Selected quad for the lemma: spirit_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
spirit_n holy_a person_n son_n 20,542 5 6.1434 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A61105 The vvay to everlasting happinesse: or, the substance of christian religion methodically and plainly handled in a familiar discourse dialogue-wise: wherein, the doctrine of the Church of England is vindicated; the ignorant instructed, and the faithfull directed in their travels to heaven. By Benjamin Spencer, preacher of the word of God at Bromley neer Bow in Middlesex. Spencer, Benjamin, b. 1595? 1659 (1659) Wing S4945; ESTC R222156 362,911 329

There are 26 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

mathe._n whether_o do_v we_o christian_n worship_v this_o one_o true_a god_n phila._n yes_o we_o do_v for_o we_o worship_v he_o that_o make_v the_o world_n by_o his_o word_n and_o do_v govern_v it_o by_o his_o wisdom_n and_o preserve_v it_o by_o his_o providence_n who_o glorious_a presence_n be_v far_o above_o all_o heaven_n yet_o have_v his_o influence_n upon_o all_o thing_n here_o below_o by_o his_o vicegerent_n nature_n who_o power_n he_o enlarge_v and_o restrain_v at_o his_o pleasure_n but_o a_o more_o rare_a in_o influx_n upon_o man_n soul_n by_o qualify_a of_o it_o with_o rare_a gift_n of_o art_n and_o science_n but_o most_o divine_o upon_o soul_n refine_v from_o the_o drossy_a world_n by_o the_o operation_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n inform_v the_o mind_n with_o divine_a light_n inspire_v with_o good_a desire_n encourage_v in_o good_a action_n prevent_v our_o do_v evil_a further_a we_o in_o do_v good_a convince_a we_o of_o sin_n affright_v we_o for_o it_o now_o this_o god_n we_o know_v to_o be_v a_o true_a god_n because_o he_o be_v the_o same_o who_o have_v be_v worship_v from_o the_o begin_n by_o the_o wise_a holy_a and_o best_a know_v man_n yea_o by_o the_o jewish_a nation_n who_o have_v the_o great_a evidence_n to_o show_v of_o this_o true_a god_n by_o his_o miracle_n oracle_n prophecy_n and_o promise_n by_o which_o the_o very_a heathen_a have_v be_v convince_v and_o become_v their_o proselyte_n 2._o because_o the_o heathen_a god_n have_v be_v force_v to_o confess_v he_o the_o great_a as_o when_o king_n thulis_n of_o egypt_n ask_v shor-apis_a their_o oracle_n suidas_n suidas_n who_o be_v the_o great_a it_o answer_v god_n word_n and_o spirit_n this_o be_v that_o trinity_n who_o all_o true_a christian_n worship_n in_o unity_n 3._o because_o we_o find_v all_o other_o god_n but_o counterfeit_n of_o this_o our_o true_a god_n and_o imperfect_a representation_n of_o his_o attribute_n or_o divine_a property_n as_o their_o baal_n a_o lord_n a_o counterfeit_n of_o this_o lord_n of_o lord_n baalzephon_a of_o our_o watch_a lord_n that_o neither_o slumber_n nor_o sleep_n so_o their_o baal-peor_a a_o counterfeit_n of_o he_o who_o give_v the_o power_n of_o generation_n baalzebub_a a_o representation_n of_o he_o that_o be_v god_n of_o host_n and_o army_n of_o all_o manner_n of_o fly_n which_o for_o sin_n he_o send_v to_o infest_v the_o nation_n and_o at_o his_o word_n be_v drive_v away_o so_o baal-berith_a a_o counterfeit_n of_o our_o god_n who_o keep_v covenant_n with_o his_o people_n for_o the_o devil_n be_v but_o god_n ape_n god_n have_v sacrifice_n and_o altar_n so_o have_v he_o god_n have_v a_o temple_n at_o jerusalem_n he_o have_v another_o at_o delos_n god_n will_v have_v his_o altar-fire_n always_o burn_v and_o satan_n will_v have_v always_o his_o vestal_a fire_n glow_v god_n have_v his_o mercy_n seat_n so_o the_o devil_n his_o tripodas_fw-la so_o apollo_n counterfeit_v god_n wisdom_n man_v his_o power_n in_o battle_n diana_n his_o purity_n mercury_n his_o declarative_a word_n jupiter_n his_o thunder_a voice_n saturn_n his_o peaceable_a providence_n venus_n his_o love_n ceres_n and_o bacchus_n his_o plentiful_a provision_n proserpina_n the_o spirit_n of_o nature_n in_o the_o earth_n neptune_n god_n power_n in_o the_o ocean_n plato_n god_n power_n even_o in_o hell_n all_o which_o be_v but_o lame_a expression_n of_o god_n property_n by_o some_o seem_a show_n whereof_o the_o devil_n have_v draw_v man_n from_o the_o true_a god_n so_o that_o the_o heathen_n worship_v they_o know_v not_o what_o but_o we_o know_v what_o we_o worship_v and_o that_o salvation_n be_v from_o our_o god_n who_o be_v infinite_a almighty_a invisible_a inscrutable_a the_o only_a wise_a and_o good_a god_n in_o who_o from_o who_o and_o by_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n to_o who_o be_v glory_n for_o ever_o amen_n mathe._n some_o be_v content_a to_o acknowledge_v a_o god_n and_o one_o god_n but_o yet_o only_o as_o one_o person_n therefore_o be_v we_o bind_v to_o believe_v person_n in_o the_o godhead_n or_o not_o phila._n you_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v god_n as_o he_o reveal_v himself_o now_o he_o have_v reveal_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o divine_a essence_n subsist_v in_o three_o person_n that_o be_v a_o unity_n in_o trinity_n mathe._n i_o pray_v first_o unfold_v the_o term_n and_o then_o prove_v god_n to_o be_v a_o unity_n in_o trinity_n phila._n first_o for_o the_o term_n you_o must_v not_o look_v to_o find_v they_o in_o scripture_n yet_o it_o disallow_v they_o not_o for_o they_o express_v the_o sense_n of_o they_o for_o 1._o the_o essence_n of_o god_n be_v express_v exod._n 3.14_o in_o that_o name_n i_o be_o that_o i_o be_o for_o essence_n or_o be_v be_v that_o which_o be_v 2._o subsistence_n signify_v only_o the_o manner_n of_o be_v as_o humane_a nature_n be_v man_n essence_n or_o substance_n of_o man_n and_o his_o person_n be_v his_o manner_n of_o subsist_v in_o that_o nature_n so_o 3_o unity_n signify_v and_o show_v the_o divine_a nature_n can_v be_v divide_v diversify_v nor_o multiply_v 4._o the_o word_n trinity_n show_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n subsist_v which_o the_o scripture_n deliver_v to_o we_o of_o god_n as_o in_o the_o 1_o of_o john_n 5.7_o there_o be_v three_o that_o bear_v record_n in_o heaven_n trinitas_fw-la vbi_fw-la unus_fw-la ibi_fw-la unitas_fw-la ubi_fw-la tres_fw-la ibi_fw-la trinitas_fw-la the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o these_o three_o be_v one_o where_o by_o the_o word_n be_v mean_v the_o son_n who_o be_v so_o call_v also_o john_n 1.1_o to_o signify_v his_o divine_a and_o spiritual_a generation_n like_o a_o word_n express_v by_o the_o mind_n so_o 5._o the_o word_n person_n signify_v to_o we_o that_o god_n be_v in_o his_o subsistence_n or_o manner_n of_o be_v a_o intellectual_a substance_n neither_o divide_v nor_o communicate_v nor_o sustain_v in_o or_o by_o any_o other_o which_o be_v the_o property_n of_o a_o person_n this_o word_n be_v find_v heb._n 1.3_o where_o christ_n the_o word_n or_o son_n of_o god_n be_v call_v the_o engrave_v image_n of_o god_n person_n mathe._n how_o come_v these_o word_n into_o use_n phila._n they_o be_v form_v by_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o more_o easy_a confutation_n of_o heresy_n by_o a_o short_a way_n of_o disputation_n and_o demonstration_n of_o this_o mystery_n of_o the_o sacred_a trinity_n which_o in_o many_o word_n can_v not_o have_v be_v so_o well_o mould_v into_o a_o form_n of_o dispute_n without_o much_o trouble_n to_o the_o memory_n and_o the_o understanding_n as_o in_o all_o art_n there_o be_v proper_a term_n which_o include_v in_o they_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o science_n in_o short_a word_n and_o therefore_o we_o be_v not_o to_o stumble_v at_o term_n which_o serve_v to_o explain_v or_o maintain_v holy_a mystery_n for_o whatsoever_o be_v not_o against_o the_o truth_n be_v for_o it_o mathe._n but_o how_o prove_v you_o that_o god_n be_v unity_n in_o trinity_n phila._n that_o god_n be_v a_o unity_n in_o himself_o none_o can_v doubt_v who_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v one_o and_o that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n as_o be_v already_o prove_v and_o that_o this_o godhead_n have_v a_o trinity_n of_o person_n in_o itself_o subsist_v we_o be_v to_o believe_v it_o upon_o scripture_n which_o do_v first_o intimate_v to_o we_o more_o person_n in_o the_o godhead_n than_o one_o as_o gen._n 1.1_o which_o say_v elohim_n bara_fw-mi that_o be_v sing_v elohim_n plum_n bara_n sing_v if_o translate_a word_n for_o word_n the_o lord_n he_o create_v to_o which_o answer_v john_n 1.1_o in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o word_n and_o the_o word_n be_v with_o god_n and_o the_o word_n be_v god_n and_o ver_fw-la 2._o all_o thing_n be_v make_v by_o he_o that_o be_v the_o son_n and_o yet_o gen._n 1.2_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n move_v upon_o the_o water_n so_o that_o there_o be_v three_o in_o this_o work_n i._n god_n the_o father_n do_v it_o by_o the_o son_n through_o the_o spirit_n so_o gen._n 1.26_o god_n say_v let_v we_o make_v man_n which_o argue_v a_o consultation_n of_o person_n so_o when_o god_n appear_v to_o abraham_n in_o the_o plain_n of_o mamre_n gen._n 18.1_o yet_o it_o be_v in_o three_o person_n ver_fw-la 2._o though_o abraham_n speak_v to_o they_o as_o one_o say_v my_o lord_n the_o poet_n shadow_v out_o this_o by_o three_o prime_a god_n jupiter_n the_o poet_n shadow_v out_o this_o by_o three_o prime_a god_n neptune_n the_o poet_n shadow_v out_o this_o by_o three_o prime_a god_n pluto_n mathe._n but_o may_v they_o not_o be_v more_o than_o three_o person_n phila._n no_o because_o the_o lord_n god_n never_o express_v himself_o by_o more_o than_o three_o as_o appear_v first_o by_o his_o command_a moses_n to_o bless_v
the_o people_n but_o thrice_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n deut._n 6.24_o the_o lord_n bless_v thou_o and_o keep_v thou_o intimate_v the_o protection_n and_o providence_n of_o the_o father_n 2._o the_o lord_n make_v his_o face_n to_o shine_v upon_o thou_o and_o be_v gracious_a to_o thou_o i._o in_o pardon_v thy_o sin_n by_o the_o gracious_a redemption_n and_o favour_n of_o the_o son_n well_o express_v by_o st_n paul_n 2_o cor._n 4.6_o call_v it_o the_o light_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n in_o the_o face_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 3._o the_o lord_n lift_v up_o the_o light_n of_o his_o countenance_n upon_o thou_o and_o give_v thou_o peace_n i._o the_o joy_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o peace_n of_o conscience_n in_o god_n promise_v which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n seal_v to_o we_o eph._n 1.13_o so_o the_o seraphin_n pronounce_v god_n thrice_o holy_a holy_a holy_a esa_n 6.3_o so_o we_o see_v in_o christ_n baptism_n 1._o the_o father_n speak_v from_o heaven_n 2._o the_o spirit_n descend_v and_o 3._o the_o son_n suscept_v baptism_n mat._n 3.16_o and_o our_o savivour_n affirm_v but_o three_o person_n john_n 16.36_o say_n when_o the_o comforter_n be_v come_v i._o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o i_o will_v send_v i_o i_o the_o son_n who_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n i._o the_o first_o person_n mathe._n be_v there_o any_o reason_n to_o prove_v this_o phila._n as_o much_o as_o any_o reasonable_a man_n can_v desire_v and_o that_o be_v the_o impression_n of_o it_o upon_o his_o work_n and_o his_o gift_n and_o in_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n 1._o he_o have_v give_v three_o principle_n of_o all_o body_n airy_a watery_a mercury_n chemist_n say_v salt_n sulphur_n and_o mercury_n and_o earthy_a matter_n and_o three_o kind_n of_o life_n or_o soul_n the_o vegetative_a or_o grow_a life_n or_o soul_n to_o plant_n the_o sensitive_a with_o vegetation_n to_o bruit_n the_o rational_a with_o both_o the_o former_a to_o man_n but_o especial_o the_o image_n of_o god_n in_o the_o first_o man_n argue_v the_o three_o person_n immortality_n wisdom_n and_o freedom_n so_o to_o the_o rational_a soul_n three_o principal_a faculty_n the_o understanding_n the_o will_n and_o the_o power_n of_o act_v so_o art_n which_o be_v god_n gift_n some_o of_o they_o show_v his_o unity_n as_o geometry_n draw_v all_o line_n from_o one_o point_n and_o arithmetic_n from_o a_o unite_v draw_v all_o number_n so_o astronomy_n all_o motion_n from_o the_o first_o mover_n so_o music_n a_o rare_a gift_n of_o god_n arise_v from_o unison_n and_o three_o concord_n and_n discord_n argue_v a_o unity_n in_o trinity_n 2._o but_o above_o all_o these_o three_o art_n by_o which_o we_o express_v our_o soul_n which_o have_v a_o impress_n of_o the_o deity_n set_v forth_o the_o trinity_n as_o they_o proceed_v one_o from_o the_o other_o for_o grammar_n be_v the_o fountain_n of_o they_o by_o letter_n which_o make_v word_n logic_n of_o word_n frame_v sense_n and_o rhetoric_n by_o help_n of_o both_o make_v a_o oration_n so_o the_o son_n be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o they_o both_o and_o therefore_o the_o cabalist_n say_v that_o before_o god_n reveal_v himself_o in_o his_o operation_n he_o be_v like_o a_o dark_a solitary_a letter_n sum_fw-la aleph_fw-la tenebro●_n sum_fw-la of_o which_o we_o can_v make_v nothing_o but_o now_o we_o know_v by_o his_o word_n and_o his_o work_n not_o only_o that_o he_o be_v but_o what_o he_o be_v 3._o he_o have_v imprint_v this_o trinity_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n as_o well_o as_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o godhead_n which_o make_v some_o learned_a man_n say_v 4_o pythago_n trismegist_n in_o pimand_n dial._n 4_o that_o all_o thing_n be_v terminate_v in_o three_o other_o that_o one_o beget_v one_o and_o by_o reflect_v on_o each_o other_o beget_v a_o three_o not_o that_o these_o man_n do_v apprehend_v the_o trinity_n as_o we_o do_v by_o scripture_n but_o this_o argue_v they_o to_o have_v a_o confuse_a knowledge_n of_o it_o as_o caiaphas_n have_v of_o christ_n death_n when_o he_o say_v it_o be_v necessary_a one_o man_n die_v for_o the_o people_n officie_fw-la aquin._n non_fw-fr è_fw-fr ●●titia_fw-la sed_fw-la ex_fw-la officie_fw-la so_o prophesy_v as_o he_o be_v high_a priest_n that_o year_n so_o these_o speak_v by_o natural_a instinct_n another_o that_o may_v be_v urge_v to_o prove_v the_o three_o person_n in_o the_o godhead_n be_v diffusivum_fw-la bonum_fw-la diffusivum_fw-la because_o god_n be_v the_o chief_a good_a be_v of_o a_o diffusive_a nature_n and_o so_o must_v communicate_v himself_o by_o some_o subsistency_n that_o be_v capable_a of_o the_o whole_a divine_a essence_n communicate_v everlasting_o from_o one_o to_o the_o other_o 10.30_o john_n 10.30_o therefore_o christ_n say_v i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one_o that_o be_v in_o the_o essence_n communicate_v not_o the_o personality_n so_o he_o say_v i_o be_o in_o the_o father_n 14.10_o john_n 14.10_o and_o the_o father_n in_o i_o that_o be_v by_o mutual_a immanency_n in_o the_o same_o essence_n so_o he_o say_v i_o come_v forth_o from_o the_o father_n that_o be_v first_o by_o his_o divine_a and_o eternal_a generation_n and_o by_o his_o temporal_a mission_n into_o the_o world_n 16.28_o john_n 16.28_o so_o he_o say_v all_o that_o the_o father_n have_v be_v i_o therefore_o i_o say_v he_o shall_v take_v of_o i_o and_o give_v it_o to_o you_o i._o the_o holy_a ghost_n 16.15_o john_n 16.15_o by_o which_o be_v understand_v the_o communication_n of_o the_o divine_a essence_n one_o to_o another_o and_o the_o communication_n of_o gift_n of_o man_n a_o similitude_n of_o this_o divine_a reflection_n and_o procession_n god_n give_v in_o the_o first_o marriage_n he_o made_z adam_z one_o then_o he_o join_v he_o to_o another_o make_v out_o of_o himself_o of_o these_o two_o he_o produce_v a_o three_o i_o child_n beside_o he_o make_v all_o thing_n but_o by_o a_o threefold_a virtue_n his_o power_n wisdom_n and_o love_n a_o representative_a of_o the_o three_o person_n nor_o be_v there_o any_o more_o than_o three_o principal_a efficient_a cause_n from_o who_o by_o who_o and_o through_o who_o a_o thing_n be_v rom._n 11._o and_o so_o all_o thing_n be_v from_o the_o father_n by_o the_o son_n through_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o receive_v and_o give_v a_o procession_n to_o thing_n so_o that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n the_o father_n 8.6_o 1_o cor._n 8.6_o and_o we_o in_o he_o and_o one_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o we_o by_o he_o and_o one_o holy_a spirit_n and_o we_o through_o he_o mathe._n but_o this_o be_v hard_a to_o conceive_v right_a and_o dangerous_a to_o conceive_v wrong_a i_o desire_v a_o rule_n or_o two_o to_o direct_v i_o aright_o in_o the_o conceive_n hereof_o phila._n 1._o that_o you_o be_v to_o believe_v the_o divine_a essence_n to_o be_v one_o yet_o the_o person_n to_o be_v three_o and_o every_o person_n to_o be_v god_n and_o lord_n and_o yet_o but_o one_o god_n because_o but_o one_o essence_n as_o there_o be_v but_o one_o humane_a nature_n though_o divers_a person_n therein_o 2._o that_o these_o person_n be_v not_o before_o one_o another_o in_o time_n but_o in_o order_n nor_o great_a than_o another_o but_o coequal_a 3._o that_o these_o three_o person_n communicate_v the_o divine_a essence_n one_o to_o another_o but_o not_o their_o personality_n for_o the_o father_n be_v not_o the_o son_n nor_o the_o son_n the_o father_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d yet_o esa_n 9.6_o the_o son_n be_v call_v the_o everlasting_a father_n but_o not_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o person_n but_o his_o essence_n which_o be_v all_o one_o with_o the_o father_n 4._o that_o in_o those_o work_n of_o the_o trinity_n which_o be_v wrought_v towards_o we_o though_o one_o person_n be_v entitle_v to_o it_o more_o than_o other_o yet_o all_o of_o they_o have_v a_o hand_n therein_o though_o one_o more_o especial_o as_o the_o father_n create_v yet_o so_o as_o by_o the_o son_n through_o the_o spirit_n the_o son_n redeem_v yet_o so_o as_o send_v from_o the_o father_n and_o conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n the_o holy_a spirit_n sanctifi_v yet_o so_o as_o through_o the_o father_n by_o the_o son_n breathe_v his_o holy_a grace_n into_o we_o 5._o that_o the_o father_n be_v the_o fountain_n of_o the_o personality_n but_o not_o of_o the_o essence_n for_o therein_o they_o be_v coeternall_a 6._o they_o all_o flow_v from_o one_o and_o the_o same_o essence_n as_o the_o light_n of_o the_o moon_n and_o that_o of_o the_o air_n be_v from_o one_o sun_n and_o as_o three_o river_n from_o one_o fountain_n 7._o that_o they_o have_v a_o mutual_a emanency_n one_o in_o the_o other_o and_o a_o eternal_a emanency_n one_o from_o the_o other_o for_o they_o be_v
each_o in_o each_o trin._n aug._n de_fw-fr trin._n christ_n be_v in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o father_n in_o he_o and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o both_o so_o they_o be_v all_o in_o each_o for_o the_o son_n be_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o father_n in_o the_o image_n of_o the_o son_n the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o the_o breath_n of_o each_o and_o they_o both_o in_o his_o operation_n 3._o all_o in_o each_o for_o one_o be_v possess_v of_o the_o other_o 4._o all_o in_o all_o the_o whole_a essence_n be_v in_o every_o person_n and_o yet_o 5._o but_o one_o in_o all_o because_o all_o three_o be_v but_o one_o god_n and_o take_v heed_n of_o think_v therefore_o 1._o that_o there_o be_v no_o god_n 2._o that_o there_o be_v no_o person_n in_o the_o god_n but_o only_a relation_n patrisp_n socin_n patrisp_n office_n or_o dispensation_n for_o so_o we_o may_v count_v the_o father_n to_o suffer_v not_o the_o son_n for_o our_o redemption_n 3._o that_o they_o be_v only_o like_a one_o another_o in_o substance_n tritheit_n arri._n eunom_n tritheit_n but_o not_o of_o the_o same_o substance_n or_o of_o a_o unlike_a substance_n but_o of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o substance_n and_o take_v heed_n of_o think_v they_o be_v three_o god_n for_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n in_o essence_n though_o three_o person_n in_o subsistence_n one_o god_n in_o be_v though_o three_o person_n in_o the_o manner_n of_o that_o be_v nor_o may_v you_o like_v the_o mahometan_n acknowledge_v one_o god_n without_o person_n or_o like_o the_o indian_n deny_v the_o son_n of_o god_n indian_n mahom._n indian_n because_o than_o they_o say_v god_n must_v have_v a_o wife_n these_o people_n only_o understand_v carnal_a generation_n not_o spiritual_a and_o in_o what_o they_o know_v natural_o therein_o they_o abuse_v themselves_o 10._o judas_n ver_fw-la 10._o and_o speak_v evil_a of_o what_o they_o know_v not_o for_o they_o perceive_v not_o how_o the_o soul_n beget_v child_n namely_o the_o thought_n and_o word_n without_o female_a conjunction_n this_o high_a knowledge_n of_o god_n shall_v teach_v we_o to_o admire_v he_o who_o we_o can_v comprehend_v and_o therefore_o to_o serve_v he_o in_o faith_n fear_n and_o reverence_n psal_n 2.11_o especial_o in_o his_o temple_n and_o service_n 138._o psal_n 138._o and_o so_o say_v with_o job_n o_o lord_n what_o i_o know_v not_o do_v thou_o teach_v i_o so_o that_o in_o thy_o knowledge_n i_o may_v find_v felicity_n we_o must_v not_o think_v this_o knowledge_n to_o be_v superfluous_a since_o it_o be_v life_n eternal_a to_o have_v it_o 16.18_o john_n 17.3_o mat._n 16.18_o and_o that_o christ_n so_o much_o approve_v st_n peter_n for_o acknowledge_v it_o i_o know_v all_o man_n can_v apprehend_v this_o alike_o yet_o if_o we_o desire_v that_o christ_n will_v show_v we_o the_o father_n john_n 14.8_o and_o that_o we_o may_v have_v his_o spirit_n he_o will_v not_o deny_v it_o to_o he_o that_o ask_v he_o especial_o if_o we_o lament_v for_o the_o loss_n of_o the_o excellent_a knowledge_n no_o doubt_n he_o will_v reveal_v so_o much_o of_o it_o to_o we_o as_o shall_v acquire_v eternal_a life_n mathe._n what_o mean_n have_v god_n give_v we_o to_o know_v he_o by_o phila._n two_o mean_n his_o work_n and_o his_o word_n his_o work_n rata_fw-la natura_fw-la naturans_fw-la &_o natu●_n rata_fw-la and_o the_o book_n of_o nature_n naturate_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n his_o word_n be_v the_o book_n of_o nature_n naturate_v i._o of_o god_n himself_o without_o which_o revelation_n man_n can_v apprehend_v god_n at_o all_o or_o very_o dark_o the_o reason_n whereof_o be_v 1._o because_o adam_n seek_v curious_a knowledge_n beyond_o the_o light_n which_o god_n give_v he_o in_o nature_n he_o lose_v that_o light_n of_o god_n which_o by_o nature_n he_o have_v and_o despoil_v himself_o of_o that_o image_n and_o character_n of_o god_n which_o god_n have_v impress_v upon_o he_o and_o so_o fall_v into_o false_a conception_n of_o god_n in_o his_o generation_n and_o by_o himself_o into_o a_o more_o obscure_a apprehension_n of_o he_o in_o his_o time_n 2._o this_o dark_a knowledge_n of_o god_n in_o man_n arise_v from_o the_o depravation_n of_o his_o affection_n which_o desire_v to_o know_v god_n sensible_o as_o man_n behold_v prince_n which_o can_v be_v in_o this_o world_n 15._o 1_o cor._n 15._o no_o more_o than_o flesh_n and_o blood_n can_v inherit_v heaven_n till_o it_o be_v mortify_v by_o death_n and_o ferment_v in_o the_o grave_n and_o refine_v at_o the_o resurrection_n moses_n desire_n be_v exuberant_a to_o see_v god_n glory_n in_o visible_a appearance_n for_o though_o god_n be_v please_v to_o be_v represent_v by_o angel_n in_o shape_n of_o man_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n yet_o he_o have_v no_o shape_n for_o to_o what_o will_v you_o liken_v i_o say_v god_n 3._o man_n be_v not_o read_v in_o scripture_n be_v oftentimes_o drive_v by_o some_o accident_n in_o the_o world_n and_o change_v of_o time_n and_o strange_a event_n above_o or_o beside_o reason_n to_o think_v that_o either_o there_o be_v no_o god_n or_o else_o that_o god_n be_v not_o just_a 2._o psal_n 37.36_o psal_n 73.1_o 2_o 3._o wisd_v 1.1_o 2._o 4._o because_o we_o find_v all_o thing_n fall_v alike_o to_o all_o and_o a_o natural_a succession_n of_o thing_n to_o be_v as_o they_o be_v always_o so_o they_o think_v we_o be_v all_o bear_v at_o adventure_n and_o all_o thing_n come_v by_o nature_n or_o fortune_n 5._o it_o come_v by_o the_o devil_n craft_n delude_v man_n with_o vanity_n and_o make_v they_o not_o to_o think_v of_o god_n and_o so_o bold_a to_o perpetrate_v horrible_a sin_n through_o blindness_n and_o hardness_n of_o heart_n whereas_o if_o they_o do_v but_o consider_v god_n way_n and_o footstep_n in_o scripture_n in_o make_v all_o thing_n and_o in_o dispose_v they_o to_o their_o several_a end_n and_o order_n the_o rare_a knowledge_n give_v to_o man_n above_o other_o creature_n the_o peace_n of_o his_o mind_n when_o he_o do_v well_o the_o terror_n of_o his_o conscience_n in_o do_v ill_a the_o impression_n and_o stamp_n of_o elohim_n upon_o his_o magistrate_n who_o he_o call_v god_n the_o strange_a vengeance_n follow_v wicked_a man_n to_o they_o who_o temporal_a judge_n either_o do_v not_o or_o can_v punish_v beside_o prodigious_a sign_n in_o heaven_n of_o future_a calamity_n so_o to_o see_v monstrous_a birth_n terrible_a earthquake_n which_o though_o they_o have_v natural_a and_o second_o cause_n yet_o why_o they_o be_v not_o always_o or_o often_o or_o not_o at_o all_o or_o in_o this_o place_n more_o than_o that_o must_v needs_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o some_o superior_a power_n but_o yet_o nothing_o of_o all_o these_o lead_v we_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n like_o the_o scripture_n mathe._n why_o so_o phila._n because_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o true_a god_n of_o who_o nothing_o can_v testify_v better_a than_o his_o own_o word_n and_o truth_n therefore_o christ_n say_v search_v the_o scripture_n for_o they_o testify_v of_o i_o second_o because_o they_o clear_o set_v forth_o god_n in_o his_o nature_n attribute_n and_o work_n mathe._n how_o prove_v you_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o true_a god_n phila._n because_o it_o alone_o do_v treat_v primary_o of_o that_o god_n who_o be_v trinity_n in_o unity_n three_o person_n in_o one_o godhead_n and_o of_o their_o relation_n one_o towards_o another_o and_o their_o operation_n in_o and_o towards_o man_n 2._o because_o it_o be_v the_o most_o ancient_a truth_n as_o the_o true_a god_n be_v the_o ancient_a of_o day_n now_o what_o be_v most_o ancient_a and_o first_o be_v true_a moses_n writing_n be_v most_o ancient_a upon_o which_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bible_n be_v a_o comment_n and_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v a_o perfect_a compliment_n and_o be_v therefore_o call_v grace_n and_o truth_n which_o come_v by_o jesus_n christ_n 1.17_o john_n 1.17_o because_o he_o bring_v to_o man_n by_o the_o gospel_n the_o love_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o bring_v the_o truth_n prophesy_v into_o fact_n and_o performance_n but_o this_o moses_n be_v the_o ancient_a writer_n masius_n eupolem_fw-la masius_n who_o some_o call_v musaeus_n some_o trismegistus_n as_o some_o have_v think_v the_o egyptian_a serapis_n to_o be_v a_o monument_n of_o joseph_n sure_o enough_o he_o be_v the_o old_a writer_n of_o divine_a revelation_n if_o not_o of_o any_o other_o he_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o cecrops_n king_n of_o athens_n aug._n aug._n the_o old_a writing_n the_o greek_n have_v be_v the_o war_n of_o troy_n which_o fall_v out_o in_o the_o time_n of_o israel_n judge_n which_o be_v three_o hundred_o year_n after_o mese_z 7.27_o act_n 7.27_o it_o be_v true_a the_o scripture_n say_v he_o be_v learn_v in_o all_o the_o
holy_a ghost_n be_v know_v by_o his_o operate_n in_o we_o the_o bless_a end_n that_o god_n intend_v in_o our_o creation_n and_o the_o effect_n of_o christ_n redemption_n that_o so_o the_o office_n of_o christ_n as_o a_o king_n priest_n and_o prophet_n may_v be_v set_v forth_o by_o our_o faith_n and_o obedience_n to_o the_o same_o of_o this_o holy_a and_o orderly_a state_n god_n make_v israel_n a_o type_n 16._o esa_n 51.15_o 16._o when_o he_o do_v that_o which_o esay_n make_v repetition_n of_o say_v i_o have_v cover_v thou_o in_o the_o shadow_n of_o my_o hand_n namely_o i_o keep_v thou_o in_o thy_o go_n through_o the_o wilderness_n to_o canaan_n that_o i_o may_v plant_v the_o heaven_n and_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o earth_n that_o be_v that_o i_o may_v make_v thou_o a_o state_n consist_v of_o superior_n and_o inferior_n as_o a_o body_n politic_a and_o say_v to_o zion_n thou_o be_v my_o people_n and_o as_o he_o make_v they_o into_o prince_n priest_n and_o people_n under_o the_o law_n so_o certain_o he_o do_v not_o intend_v to_o leave_v the_o gospel_n people_n to_o disorder_n and_o confusion_n and_o therefore_o he_o make_v king_n nurse_v father_n and_o apostle_n bishop_n and_o presbyter_n to_o instruct_v and_o people_n to_o be_v rule_v and_o instruct_v as_o i_o have_v already_o declare_v it_o remain_v to_o show_v what_o effect_n in_o the_o mystery_n of_o godliness_n the_o bless_a spirit_n work_v on_o christ_n redeem_a people_n call_v the_o church_n mathe._n that_o i_o desire_v to_o know_v phila._n first_o it_o work_v in_o christ_n church_n people_n outward_a and_o inward_a holy_a worship_n the_o outward_a consist_v in_o place_n utensil_n and_o gesture_n fit_a for_o divine_a service_n the_o inward_a consist_v in_o a_o holy_a heart_n and_o life_n answerable_a thereunto_o which_o be_v wrought_v in_o we_o by_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o three_o person_n in_o the_o most_o holy_a trinity_n mathe._n what_o be_o i_o to_o conceive_v and_o believe_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n since_o i_o find_v little_a speech_n of_o he_o in_o the_o creed_n save_v only_o in_o one_o article_n or_o two_o at_o most_o phila._n though_o you_o find_v little_a speech_n of_o he_o as_o you_o do_v of_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n yet_o all_o those_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n that_o follow_v from_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v relate_v to_o he_o and_o to_o his_o operation_n upon_o the_o object_n thereof_o which_o be_v the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n which_o he_o sanctifi_v by_o make_v in_o it_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n and_o seal_v to_o it_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o bestow_v upon_o it_o the_o power_n of_o the_o bless_a resurrection_n and_o the_o felicity_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o insomuch_o as_o we_o be_v teach_v to_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o well_o as_o in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n that_o word_n in_o do_v intimate_v to_o we_o 1._o that_o he_o be_v god_n as_o well_o as_o the_o father_n and_o son_n or_o else_o we_o may_v not_o believe_v upon_o he_o but_o we_o find_v that_o we_o be_v to_o be_v baptize_v into_o his_o name_n together_o with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n mat._n 28.29_o 2._o that_o he_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o therefore_o call_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n of_o the_o father_n john_n 15.26_o and_o of_o the_o son_n rom._n 8.9_o and_o procee_v from_o the_o son_n in_o that_o he_o breathe_v he_o upon_o his_o disciple_n john_n 20.22_o and_o yet_o be_v a_o distinct_a person_n from_o they_o both_o as_o appeareth_z mat._n 3.17_o where_o the_o father_n speak_v and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n descend_v and_o the_o sun_n submit_v his_o humane_a nature_n to_o baptism_n and_o yet_o he_o be_v equal_a to_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o therefore_o divine_a worship_n be_v due_a to_o he_o as_o to_o they_o therefore_o it_o be_v fit_a that_o we_o know_v he_o in_o his_o nature_n and_o operation_n mathe._n i_o pray_v declare_v they_o to_o i_o phila._n i_o shall_v first_o he_o be_v eternal_a and_o be_v before_o the_o world_n gen._n 1.2_o and_o can_v alter_v his_o nature_n and_o condition_n so_o second_o he_o be_v immense_a and_o so_o every_o where_o present_a psal_n 139.7_o and_o therefore_o he_o be_v at_o hand_n always_o to_o give_v we_o his_o help_n and_o assistance_n again_o he_o be_v omnipotent_a rom._n 15.19_o all_o wonder_n and_o miracle_n be_v do_v by_o he_o and_o therefore_o he_o be_v able_a to_o deliver_v we_o and_o make_v we_o for_o ever_o most_o happy_a as_o well_o as_o he_o be_v omniscient_a know_v all_o our_o want_n act_n 10.19_o 1_o cor._n 2.10_o now_o for_o his_o effect_n they_o be_v either_o common_a or_o proper_a common_a to_o all_o creature_n or_o all_o man_n to_o all_o creature_n as_o in_o the_o creation_n when_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n cowr_v on_o the_o water_n and_o earth_n mix_v together_o not_o yet_o separate_v as_o a_o hen_n sit_v on_o egg_n thereby_o qualify_a that_o chaos_n to_o take_v several_a form_n gen._n 1.2_o which_o spirit_n also_o garnish_v the_o heaven_n job_n 26.13_o and_o be_v still_o send_v forth_o to_o continue_v the_o creature_n by_o production_n and_o generation_n psal_n 104.30_o which_o kind_n of_o operation_n be_v common_a also_o to_o all_o man_n job_n 33.4_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n have_v make_v i_o and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o the_o same_o spirit_n give_v invention_n to_o man_n of_o art_n and_o science_n as_o to_o bezaleel_n and_o aholiab_n exod._n 31.3_o so_o to_o write_v excellent_a thing_n for_o the_o common_a use_n of_o man_n so_o to_o qualify_v minister_n with_o the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n and_o preach_v and_o tongue_n yet_o not_o all_o with_o save_v grace_n mat_n 7.22_o so_o many_o man_n have_v illumination_n to_o discern_v of_o some_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n by_o draw_v off_o the_o veil_n that_o hang_v before_o other_o man_n eye_n though_o without_o application_n to_o themselves_o or_o correspondent_a practice_n of_o such_o knowledge_n heb._n 6.4_o 5._o they_o have_v a_o taste_n but_o no_o delight_n nor_o digestion_n for_o it_o neither_o take_v they_o from_o the_o love_n of_o the_o world_n nor_o make_v they_o the_o more_o to_o love_n god_n or_o goodness_n yea_o and_o in_o other_o man_n he_o work_v restrain_v grace_n to_o forbear_v some_o foul_a sin_n as_o abimelech_n to_o forbear_v sarah_n gen._n 20.6_o yea_o and_o to_o do_v some_o laudable_a action_n contrary_a to_o their_o disposition_n 1_o sam._n 10.10_o when_o saul_n prophesy_v which_o be_v so_o strange_a to_o the_o people_n that_o it_o become_v a_o proverb_n be_v saul_n also_o among_o the_o prophet_n this_o restrain_v grace_n god_n give_v the_o wicked_a not_o sur_fw-fr their_z own_o but_o for_o the_o church_n sake_n who_o will_v by_o they_o otherwise_o in_o their_o lust_n be_v base_o defile_v or_o utter_o destroy_v now_o there_o be_v other_o operation_n and_o effect_n of_o the_o spirit_n proper_a to_o the_o elect_a and_o some_o of_o they_o be_v general_a and_o some_o particular_a the_o general_n be_v the_o conception_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o qualification_n of_o his_o humane_a nature_n to_o make_v it_o fir_n for_o the_o great_a work_n of_o redemption_n of_o the_o elect_a isa_n 61.1_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v upon_o i_o to_o preach_v glad_a tiding_n etc._n etc._n which_o spirit_n he_o receive_v without_o measure_n john_n 3.34_o the_o second_o general_a work_n be_v his_o dwell_n in_o the_o elect_a by_o which_o they_o be_v make_v a_o temple_n for_o god_n 2_o cor._n 6.10_o and_o build_v together_o for_o god_n habitation_n eph._n 2.22_o also_o regeneration_n of_o they_o whereby_o they_o be_v wash_v and_o sanctify_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o our_o god_n 1_o cor._n 6.11_o then_o next_o he_o unit_v the_o elect_a into_o one_o mystical_a body_n by_o faith_n and_o love_n in_o the_o bond_n of_o peace_n beside_o 4.3_o eph._n 4.3_o he_o have_v particular_a operation_n in_o the_o singular_a person_n of_o the_o elect_a as_o first_o he_o work_v in_o they_o liberty_n from_o the_o power_n of_o sin_n and_o ability_n to_o subdue_v the_o corruption_n in_o nature_n which_o neither_o natural_a reason_n not_o moral_a prudence_n can_v do_v but_o where_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v there_o be_v liberty_n 2_o cor._n 3.13_o because_o the_o law_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n have_v make_v we_o free_a from_o the_o law_n of_o sin_n and_o death_n rom._n 8.2_o and_o this_o the_o spirit_n do_v by_o exercise_v of_o we_o in_o the_o work_n of_o mortification_n till_o we_o have_v crucify_v the_o old_a man_n and_o even_o wound_a sin_n to_o death_n by_o become_v to_o we_o the_o
other_o christian_n but_o so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v in_o christ_n school_n no_o doubt_n but_o there_o will_v be_v something_o to_o be_v learn_v 13._o ephes_n 4_o 13._o whether_o they_o be_v scholar_n or_o master_n till_o we_o come_v to_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o stature_n of_o christ_n mathe._n how_o do_v the_o scripture_n set_v forth_o god_n to_o we_o phila._n by_o his_o attribute_n or_o qualification_n which_o both_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o godhead_n and_o natural_a reason_n will_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v in_o he_o whereby_o it_o apprehend_v he_o for_o god_n be_v infinite_a can_v be_v full_o apprehend_v nor_o define_v by_o we_o but_o his_o nature_n be_v know_v by_o way_n of_o eminence_n as_o whatsoever_o good_a i_o find_v in_o the_o creature_n i_o attribute_v the_o same_o to_o god_n in_o the_o high_a degree_n 2._o by_o way_n of_o negation_n and_o so_o whatsoever_o deficiency_n i_o find_v in_o the_o creature_n i_o deny_v any_o jot_n of_o it_o to_o be_v in_o god_n 3._o by_o causation_n because_o when_o i_o see_v the_o creature_n i_o can_v conceive_v they_o make_v themselves_o but_o be_v cause_v by_o some_o be_v far_o above_o themselves_o and_o thus_o even_o natural_a man_n be_v lead_v unto_o god_n but_o the_o scripture_n set_v he_o out_o more_o clear_o to_o we_o in_o his_o essence_n and_o his_o attribute_n 1._o that_o he_o be_v a_o essence_n most_o high_o perfect_a therefore_o call_v jehovah_n i_o be_o that_o i_o be_o signify_v that_o he_o be_v be_v in_o himself_o of_o himself_o 3.14_o exod._n 3.14_o and_o by_o himself_o and_o so_o be_v the_o principle_n of_o all_o being_n in_o who_o all_o thing_n live_v move_v and_o have_v be_v and_o so_o he_o be_v just_o call_v essence_n and_o that_o this_o essence_n subsi_v in_o three_o person_n father_n son_n and_o holy_a spirit_n who_o in_o heaven_n bear_v record_n to_o the_o scripture_n truth_n 5.7_o 1_o john_n 5.7_o and_o in_o regard_n of_o this_o plurality_n of_o person_n god_n be_v call_v elohim_n lord_n 2._o the_o scripture_n set_v he_o forth_o to_o we_o by_o divers_a attribute_n by_o which_o we_o have_v a_o clear_a apprehension_n of_o he_o to_o our_o capacity_n which_o can_v in_o any_o one_o word_n apprehend_v his_o nature_n now_o some_o of_o these_o we_o find_v in_o the_o creature_n other_o not_o for_o some_o of_o they_o can_v be_v communicate_v to_o any_o but_o himself_o mathe._n which_o be_v his_o incommunicable_a attribute_n and_o what_o use_n can_v we_o make_v of_o they_o phila._n the_o first_o be_v simplicity_n of_o essence_n by_o which_o we_o know_v he_o be_v uncompounded_a without_o part_n matter_n or_o form_n 1.7_o 1_o tim._n 1.7_o the_o second_o be_v his_o infiniteness_n without_o measure_n quantity_n 145.3_o psal_n 145.3_o or_o determination_n of_o time_n and_o place_n or_o quantity_n virtue_n power_n 3._o he_o be_v eternal_a without_o beginning_n of_o time_n past_a or_o end_n in_o respect_n of_o time_n to_o come_v 4._o 13.23_o 1_o sam._n 13.23_o he_o be_v immutable_a without_o alteration_n or_o corruption_n change_n or_o shadow_n of_o change_n 23.28_o jer._n 23.28_o 5._o he_o be_v unmeasurable_a without_o circumscription_n of_o place_n without_o increase_n or_o decrease_v within_o and_o without_o every_o place_n 1_o kin._n 8.27_o mathe._n of_o what_o use_n be_v these_o to_o we_o phila._n 1._o if_o god_n be_v pure_o simple_a than_o we_o know_v thereby_o that_o god_n be_v but_o one_o and_o full_a of_o all_o perfection_n that_o he_o be_v true_a and_o sincere_a in_o his_o promise_n nor_o can_v deceive_v any_o from_o which_o consideration_n arise_v the_o certainty_n of_o our_o salvation_n it_o teach_v we_o also_o to_o avoid_v hypocrifie_n and_o embrace_v sincerity_n oneness_n and_o singleness_n of_o heart_n and_o soul_n and_o to_o strive_v to_o be_v like_o god_n only_o without_o mixture_n of_o sin_n in_o our_o affection_n 2._o if_o he_o be_v infinite_a then_o to_o admire_v his_o greatness_n and_o his_o goodness_n his_o love_n and_o his_o mercy_n and_o to_o love_v he_o infinite_o for_o it_o by_o his_o eternity_n i_o have_v assurance_n of_o a_o election_n before_o the_o world_n and_o everlasting_a life_n after_o it_o in_o he_o who_o have_v neither_o beginning_n nor_o end_n his_o immutability_n call_v to_o we_o for_o unchangeableness_n in_o our_o faith_n hope_n and_o charity_n by_o any_o cross_n or_o affliction_n which_o be_v all_o send_v from_o god_n that_o be_v immutable_a in_o his_o love_n and_o promise_n so_o his_o immensity_n and_o ubiquity_n ought_v to_o confirm_v we_o in_o his_o providence_n because_o he_o be_v a_o god_n not_o only_o near_a but_o a_o god_n also_o afar_o off_o and_o to_o avoid_v sin_n because_o we_o be_v always_o in_o his_o sight_n especial_o hypocrisy_n because_o he_o be_v within_o we_o as_o well_o as_o without_o we_o and_o also_o to_o fly_v superstitious_a worship_v of_o saint_n or_o angel_n since_o he_o himself_o be_v near_o to_o all_o that_o call_v upon_o he_o mathe._n which_o be_v his_o incommunicable_a attribute_n phila._n those_o who_o shadow_n we_o find_v in_o ourselves_o as_o life_n wisdom_n will_n and_o power_n which_o be_v to_o be_v conceive_v in_o god_n absolute_o abstractive_o and_o essential_o as_o that_o he_o be_v life_n itself_o wisdom_n freedom_n and_o power_n itself_o not_o as_o they_o be_v in_o we_o finite_o imperfect_o and_o mutable_o but_o they_o be_v speak_v of_o god_n for_o our_o capacity_n sake_n without_o which_o term_n we_o can_v understand_v nothing_o of_o god_n mathe._n why_o what_o do_v we_o know_v of_o god_n hereby_o phila._n 1._o by_o life_n we_o understand_v god_n most_o simple_a and_o infinite_a activity_n by_o which_o he_o do_v please_v to_o act_v himself_o and_o all_o thing_n else_o and_o this_o argue_v he_o to_o differ_v transcendent_o from_o all_o feign_a god_n and_o creature_n which_o have_v their_o life_n only_o by_o his_o communication_n of_o life_n to_o they_o yet_o not_o as_o the_o eternal_a son_n who_o have_v life_n from_o the_o father_n by_o immanency_n in_o he_o and_o by_o emanation_n from_o he_o but_o by_o participation_n 1.4_o john_n 5.26_o john_n 1.4_o not_o of_o himself_o but_o of_o some_o virtue_n from_o himself_o therefore_o as_o god_n the_o father_n have_v life_n in_o himself_o so_o have_v he_o give_v the_o son_n to_o have_v life_n in_o himself_o and_o this_o life_n be_v the_o light_n of_o man_n and_o through_o the_o energy_n of_o the_o spirit_n quicken_v all_o thing_n that_o have_v life_n for_o as_o god_n make_v the_o sun_n to_o be_v the_o centre_n of_o light_n natural_a so_o he_o have_v ordain_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o centre_n of_o life_n natural_a in_o the_o creation_n and_o also_o the_o centre_n of_o spiritual_a life_n in_o regeneration_n by_o which_o we_o come_v to_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o so_o final_o of_o life_n eternal_o 2._o by_o his_o wisdom_n we_o understand_v and_o be_v signify_v unto_o we_o that_o god_n know_v and_o understand_v all_o thing_n infinite_o and_o most_o simple_o plain_o and_o distinct_o at_o once_o not_o successive_o or_o discoursive_o and_o therefore_o prescience_n and_o foreknowledge_n and_o remembrance_n be_v improper_o attribute_v to_o god_n save_v for_o our_o understanding_n this_o attribute_n teach_v we_o that_o all_o wisdom_n in_o the_o creature_n come_v from_o god_n jam._n jam._n not_o to_o fear_v any_o trouble_n in_o the_o world_n raise_v by_o satan_n or_o wicked_a man_n but_o resolve_v to_o endure_v with_o patience_n because_o they_o be_v permit_v by_o the_o wise_a god_n for_o end_n best_o know_v to_o himself_o for_o he_o know_v of_o they_o sees_z and_o smile_v at_o the_o madness_n of_o man_n who_o like_o foolish_a child_n desire_v of_o their_o father_n knife_n and_o dagger_n which_o have_v get_v they_o wound_v other_o and_o themselves_o worst_a 3._o by_o god_n will_n be_v signify_v god_n infinite_a free_a approbation_n or_o disallowance_n of_o what_o he_o wise_o know_v to_o be_v approve_v or_o disallow_v so_o that_o he_o neither_o begin_v to_o will_v what_o once_o he_o will_v not_o nor_o can_v be_v hinder_v to_o do_v what_o he_o will_n now_o this_o will_n have_v divers_a term_n in_o scripture_n according_a to_o the_o divers_a object_n of_o it_o as_o 1._o truth_n because_o he_o will_v constant_o what_o he_o will_v rom._n 3.4_o so_o goodness_n because_o he_o be_v willing_a and_o propense_a to_o do_v good_a to_o his_o creature_n so_o love_n because_o he_o be_v willing_a to_o approve_v what_o be_v good_a and_o to_o be_v well_o please_v with_o it_o so_o hatred_n because_o he_o be_v not_o willing_a to_o allow_v evil_a but_o be_v most_o willing_a to_o punish_v it_o because_o he_o do_v detest_v it_o so_o his_o justice_n because_o he_o be_v infinite_o willing_a to_o do_v right_a as_o to_o reward_v the_o good_a and_o punish_v the_o evil_a so_o his_o
53.8_o and_o make_v his_o soul_n a_o offering_n for_o sin_n isa_n 53.10_o after_o sixty_o two_o week_n say_v daniel_n shall_v messiah_n be_v cut_v off_o but_o not_o for_o himself_o dan._n 9.25_o 26._o that_o be_v if_o you_o mark_v the_o verse_n the_o angel_n allot_v seven_o week_n for_o rebuilding_n of_o the_o temple_n which_o be_v forty_o nine_o year_n reckon_v of_o the_o jew_n but_o forty_o six_o year_n john_n 2.20_o because_o they_o reckon_v not_o the_o first_o three_o year_n when_o the_o foundation_n be_v but_o lay_v by_o cyrus_n his_o edict_n and_o the_o work_n stay_v again_o by_o artaxerxes_n longimanus_fw-la 4.7_o ezra_n 4.7_o till_o they_o have_v get_v a_o second_o edict_n ezra_n 6.1_o from_o darius_n nothus_fw-la then_o the_o angel_n allot_v to_o the_o former_a seven_o week_n sixty_o two_o week_n more_o which_o be_v about_o 434._o year_n in_o all_o 483._o or_o thereabouts_o in_o the_o end_n whereof_o christ_n suffer_v on_o the_o cross_n to_o make_v a_o end_n of_o sin_n and_o finish_v transgression_n and_o to_o make_v reconciliation_n for_o iniquity_n and_o to_o bring_v in_o everlasting_a righteousness_n this_o scourge_v wound_a and_o pierce_v be_v foresee_v also_o by_o isa_n 53.5_o he_o be_v bruise_v for_o our_o iniquity_n and_o chastise_v for_o our_o peace_n and_o say_v zach._n 12.12_o they_o shall_v look_v on_o he_o who_o they_o have_v pierce_v for_o a_o soldier_n pierce_v his_o side_n as_o well_o as_o other_o do_v his_o hand_n and_o foot_n when_o they_o nail_v they_o to_o the_o cross_n so_o his_o very_a carry_v of_o his_o cross_n 19.34_o john_n 19.34_o be_v type_v out_o by_o isaac_n carry_v the_o wood_n to_o sacrifice_v himself_o upon_o 10._o gen._n 22.9_o 10._o and_o as_o abraham_n stretch_v out_o his_o hand_n to_o slay_v his_o son_n so_o god_n love_v the_o world_n that_o he_o give_v his_o son_n john_n 3.16_o and_o he_o himself_o become_v obedient_a to_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n 21.9_o numb_a 21.9_o and_o as_o moses_n lift_v up_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n in_o the_o wilderness_n for_o the_o cure_n of_o the_o people_n upon_o a_o pole_n 14._o john_n 12.32_o john_n 14._o so_o be_v christ_n lift_v up_o on_o the_o cross_n for_o the_o save_n of_o we_o who_o be_v bite_v by_o satan_n and_o sin_n also_o so_o also_o his_o resurrection_n have_v a_o type_n as_o isaac_n take_v from_o the_o altar_n and_o restore_v safe_a and_o sound_a to_o abraham_n the_o three_o day_n after_o that_o he_o be_v assign_v to_o death_n gen._n 22.4_o of_o who_o it_o be_v say_v that_o abraham_n receive_v he_o again_o in_o a_o figure_n heb._n in_o what_o figure_n but_o only_o of_o he_o that_o be_v to_o come_v of_o his_o seed_n in_o who_o death_n and_o resurrection_n all_o nation_n shall_v be_v bless_v so_o jonah_n the_o first_o prophet_n who_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o jeroboam_fw-la the_o second_o 14.25_o 2_o kin._n 14.25_o and_o the_o first_o prophet_n send_v to_o the_o gentile_n to_o niniveh_n who_o because_o he_o divert_v to_o tarsus_n be_v swallow_v of_o a_o great_a fish_n in_o who_o belly_n he_o remain_v till_o the_o three_o day_n after_o and_o for_o so_o long_a time_n the_o grave_n swallow_v christ_n but_o then_o he_o arise_v and_o so_o his_o flesh_n see_v no_o corruption_n psal_n 16._o and_o that_o may_v well_o be_v without_o a_o miracle_n if_o the_o body_n be_v not_o accidental_o corrupt_v before_o it_o be_v dead_a as_o in_o violent_a death_n common_o man_n be_v not_o now_o christ_n lay_v not_o in_o the_o grave_n above_o 40._o hour_n and_o common_o dead_a body_n corrupt_v not_o till_o about_o seventy_o hour_n and_o this_o show_v that_o he_o rise_v within_o three_o day_n and_o so_o see_v no_o corruption_n as_o the_o psalmist_n say_v psal_n 16._o which_o be_v expound_v plain_o so_o by_o st_n peter_n act_v 2.31_o and_o as_o isaiah_n have_v also_o foretell_v that_o the_o dead_a man_n shall_v live_v and_o with_o christ_n body_n they_o shall_v come_v so_o they_o do_v mat._n 27.52_o 53._o thus_o christ_n conquer_v death_n in_o his_o own_o kingdom_n as_o say_v hosea_n 13.14_o and_o death_n have_v no_o more_o dominion_n over_o he_o rom._n 6.9_o because_o he_o be_v now_o swallow_v up_o into_o victory_n 1_o cor._n 15.55_o and_o thus_o as_o god_n speak_v to_o the_o great_a fish_n and_o it_o cast_v out_o jonah_n on_o the_o dry_a land_n 2.10_o jon._n 2.10_o so_o the_o temple_n of_o christ_n body_n which_o the_o jew_n destroy_v he_o rebuilt_a in_o three_o day_n and_o for_o his_o ascension_n as_o it_o be_v prophesy_v so_o it_o be_v accomplish_v eliah_n be_v a_o type_n of_o it_o 2_o kin._n 2.11_o be_v take_v up_o in_o a_o fiery_a chariot_n so_o christ_n be_v take_v up_o out_o of_o his_o disciple_n sight_n into_o heaven_n luke_n 24.51_o as_o be_v prophesy_v in_o psal_n 68.18_o thou_o have_v ascend_v up_o on_o high_a and_o lead_v captivity_n captive_a so_o he_o be_v take_v away_o his_o disciple_n behold_v it_o at_o first_o 1.9_o act_n 1.9_o but_o after_o a_o cloud_n take_v he_o out_o of_o their_o sight_n and_o now_o he_o sit_v on_o god_n right_a hand_n foretell_v psal_n 110.1_o and_o aver_v in_o mark_n 16.19_o and_o from_o he_o the_o holy_a ghost_n like_o a_o most_o gracious_a rain_n from_o heaven_n have_v fall_v upon_o his_o apostle_n act_n 2.15_o 16._o and_o upon_o many_o thousand_o of_o believer_n as_o be_v foreprophecy_v joel_n 2.18_o and_o type_v forth_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o eliah_n rest_v upon_o elisha_n 2_o kin._n 1.13_o 5._o even_o so_o god_n have_v send_v forth_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o son_n into_o your_o heart_n baptise_v we_o with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o as_o bless_a fire_n from_o heaven_n give_v some_o the_o gift_n of_o tongue_n act_v 2.4_o other_o to_o prophecy_n some_o to_o teach_v other_o to_o learn_v and_o increase_v in_o faith_n and_o the_o love_n and_o knowledge_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n mathe._n now_o as_o you_o have_v show_v the_o promise_n type_n and_o prophecy_n and_o history_n of_o christ_n conception_n birth_n death_n resurrection_n and_o ascension_n show_v i_o also_o the_o mystery_n of_o godliness_n intend_v thereby_o in_o relation_n to_o christian_n and_o first_o of_o all_o i_o desire_v to_o understand_v right_o his_o conception_n for_o therein_o lie_v a_o great_a mystery_n wherein_o our_o understanding_n be_v easy_o lose_v if_o we_o be_v not_o right_o direct_v for_o how_o can_v one_o person_n in_o the_o trinity_n be_v conceive_v or_o become_v incarnate_a without_o the_o other_o two_o see_v the_o divine_a nature_n be_v not_o divide_v but_o be_v in_o each_o person_n total_o phila._n the_o divine_a nature_n can_v be_v divide_v for_o substance_n but_o in_o the_o manner_n of_o subsistence_n it_o be_v distinguish_v for_o it_o be_v after_o one_o manner_n in_o the_o father_n i_o unbegotten_a after_o another_o manner_n in_o the_o son_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d because_o in_o he_o it_o be_v beget_v i._o communicate_v by_o divine_a generation_n after_o another_o manner_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n because_o proceed_v from_o both_o john_n 15.16_o now_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v that_o the_o humane_a nature_n be_v assume_v by_o the_o divine_a nature_n as_o consider_v only_o in_o the_o son_n as_o he_o enjoi_v it_o be_v the_o perfect_a image_n of_o the_o father_n heb._n 1.1_o 2_o 3._o and_o so_o be_v the_o natural_a son_n of_o god_n be_v most_o fit_a to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o so_o thereby_o restore_v the_o son_n of_o man_n by_o adoption_n to_o be_v make_v the_o son_n of_o god_n yet_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v that_o all_o the_o trinity_n have_v a_o hand_n in_o it_o 1.12_o john_n 1.12_o for_o the_o father_n wrought_v it_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o the_o son_n only_o assume_v it_o as_o three_o folk_n may_v make_v one_o garment_n and_o yet_o but_o one_o of_o the_o three_o wear_v it_o mathe._n but_o the_o conception_n be_v apply_v to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o so_o i_o be_o apt_a to_o believe_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v his_o father_n phila._n he_o be_v conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n effectual_o not_o material_o he_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v but_o give_v not_o any_o matter_n out_o of_o himself_o to_o the_o nature_n of_o christ_n so_o that_o he_o be_v conceive_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_z unite_n the_o nature_n divine_a and_o humane_a together_o damascen_n bernard_n damascen_n not_o by_o generation_n but_o by_o institution_n and_o benediction_n and_o operation_n not_o spermatical_o as_o other_o father_n beget_v child_n so_o it_o be_v say_v rom._n 11.36_o all_o thing_n be_v of_o god_n yet_o not_o of_o his_o substance_n but_o by_o his_o power_n so_o that_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o regard_n that_o his_o humane_a nature_n
sanctify_v from_o sin_n without_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o covenant_n heb._n 9.22_o and_o ephe._n 1.7_o and_o so_o there_o must_v have_v be_v another_o mediator_n beside_o himself_o which_o st_n paul_n deni_v 1_o tim._n 2.5_o there_o be_v but_o one_o mediator_n even_o the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n the_o high_a priest_n who_o be_v in_o himself_o holy_a innocent_a and_o undefiled_a and_o separate_v from_o sinner_n heb._n mathe._n but_o if_o christ_n humane_a nature_n come_v from_o the_o bless_a virgin_n and_o from_o adam_n he_o can_v not_o avoid_v the_o taint_n of_o sin_n no_o more_o than_o he_o can_v death_n phila._n we_o be_v to_o consider_v as_o i_o say_v before_o that_o sin_n cleave_v not_o to_o substance_n alone_o but_o to_o person_n and_o consider_v that_o he_o take_v no_o person_n of_o the_o virgin_n but_o her_o substance_n which_o be_v immediate_o unite_v to_o his_o godhead_n in_o subsistence_n and_o only_o so_o make_v a_o person_n it_o will_v follow_v that_o though_o his_o substance_n yet_o his_o person_n be_v never_o in_o adam_n and_o so_o never_o sin_v in_o adam_n and_o so_o never_o taint_v with_o original_a sin_n for_o as_o it_o can_v not_o be_v propagate_v by_o his_o manner_n of_o conception_n so_o neither_o can_v it_o be_v just_o impute_v to_o his_o person_n which_o be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n and_o for_o his_o death_n it_o be_v voluntary_a death_n do_v not_o by_o his_o own_o power_n prevail_v over_o he_o but_o he_o lay_v it_o down_o john_n 10.17_o 18._o nor_o do_v death_n fall_v upon_o he_o as_o a_o sinner_n but_o as_o the_o surety_n for_o sin_n mathe._n what_o effect_n work_v this_o conception_n for_o we_o phila._n 1._o it_o hide_v the_o impurity_n of_o our_o conception_n from_o god_n anger_n because_o this_o satisfi_v god_n justice_n for_o original_a sin_n for_o the_o righteousness_n hereof_o be_v impute_v to_o we_o and_o by_o it_o be_v constitute_v holiness_n of_o nature_n for_o in_o this_o he_o be_v qualify_v with_o all_o habit_n of_o grace_n and_o virtue_n which_o by_o his_o spirit_n he_o pour_v also_o upon_o we_o for_o this_o purpose_n he_o take_v a_o humane_a body_n because_o sacrifice_v and_o offering_n will_v not_o satisfy_v psal_n 40._o and_o heb._n 10.5_o 2._o this_o conception_n work_v a_o spiritual_a life_n and_o conception_n in_o we_o for_o our_o nature_n in_o he_o be_v conceive_v and_o quicken_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o womb_n from_o thence_o proceed_v the_o power_n of_o our_o regeneration_n from_o he_o that_o be_v the_o original_n of_o spiritual_a life_n in_o our_o nature_n for_o the_o spirit_n that_o form_v he_o in_o the_o womb_n do_v beget_v we_o again_o to_o live_v in_o he_o and_o so_o do_v justify_v we_o before_o god_n from_o the_o evil_n that_o cleave_v to_o our_o nature_n mathe._n he_o be_v oftentimes_o call_v in_o the_o gospel_n even_o by_o himself_o too_o the_o son_n of_o man_n how_o then_o shall_v i_o conceive_v his_o conception_n to_o be_v more_o than_o humane_a phila._n his_o conception_n and_o birth_n be_v full_a of_o wonder_n yet_o may_v be_v discern_v with_o distinction_n for_o it_o seem_v a_o new_a creation_n for_o as_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n no_o woman_n be_v his_o mother_n and_o as_o he_o be_v man_n he_o have_v no_o father_n he_o be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o man_n because_o he_o take_v our_o nature_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n substance_n yet_o he_o be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o the_o most_o high_a mat._n 1._o because_o he_o be_v the_o second_o person_n in_o the_o holy_a trinity_n which_o title_n be_v give_v to_o the_o nature_n assume_v because_o it_o have_v no_o subsistence_n but_o in_o his_o person_n that_o be_v the_o natural_a son_n of_o god_n in_o which_o regard_n the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v call_v the_o mother_n of_o god_n not_o of_o his_o deity_n but_o of_o this_o union_n of_o god_n and_o man_n yet_o his_o person_n be_v not_o circumscribe_v in_o her_o womb_n though_o the_o humane_a nature_n be_v but_o as_o his_o body_n be_v heaven_n local_o and_o be_v in_o the_o word_n substantial_o and_o in_o the_o sacrament_n mystical_o and_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o a_o believer_n spiritual_o so_o it_o be_v in_o her_o body_n natural_o mathe._n how_o be_o i_o to_o conceive_v of_o the_o birth_n of_o christ_n phila._n he_o be_v bear_v three_o way_n of_o his_o father_n of_o his_o mother_n and_o in_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n of_o his_o father_n eternal_o of_o his_o mother_n temporal_o and_o in_o man_n mind_n spiritual_o for_o three_o thing_n have_v relation_n to_o his_o birth_n deity_n flesh_n and_o spirit_n of_o his_o father_n he_o be_v bear_v god_n for_o ever_o of_o his_o mother_n flesh_n once_o and_o in_o man_n mind_n he_o be_v bear_v spirit_n figurative_o often_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o divine_a nature_n he_o have_v a_o father_n without_o a_o mother_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o humane_a nature_n he_o have_v a_o mother_n without_o a_o father_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o spiritual_a nativity_n he_o have_v both_o father_n and_o mother_n i._n they_o that_o do_v his_o will_n paul_n say_v god_n be_v manifest_v in_o flesh_n 1._o from_o the_o bosom_n of_o his_o father_n in_o who_o he_o be_v conceal_v 2._o from_o the_o shadow_n of_o the_o law_n in_o which_o he_o be_v prefigure_v 3._o from_o the_o womb_n of_o his_o mother_n in_o which_o he_o be_v cover_v this_o be_v the_o great_a and_o the_o most_o gracious_a work_n consider_v in_o all_o the_o consequence_n of_o it_o as_o his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n which_o without_o this_o can_v not_o have_v be_v that_o ever_o god_n wrought_v who_o for_o these_o humiliation_n give_v he_o a_o name_n above_o all_o name_n jesus_n the_o saviour_n 2.9_o phil._n 2.9_o which_o name_n although_o other_o have_v as_o well_o as_o he_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n yet_o they_o be_v but_o figure_n of_o he_o yea_o the_o name_n jehovah_n signify_v but_o essence_n i._n god_n as_o he_o be_v the_o author_n of_o be_v but_o jesus_n signify_v god_n our_o well_o be_v a_o saviour_n than_o which_o there_o be_v no_o other_o name_n of_o salvation_n give_v act._n it_o be_v the_o name_n of_o the_o eternal_a word_n incarnate_a it_o contain_v in_o it_o the_o whole_a oeconomy_n of_o the_o work_n of_o redemption_n wherein_o the_o attribute_n of_o god_n be_v unite_v wisdom_n justice_n peace_n 85._o psal_n 85._o mercy_n and_o truth_n this_o be_v well_o call_v his_o great_a work_n of_o a_o woman_n compass_v a_o man_n and_o wonderful_a great_a it_o be_v in_o effect_n for_o in_o the_o creation_n god_n make_v man_n in_o his_o image_n and_o so_o earth_n be_v honour_v but_o in_o christ_n birth_n god_n make_v himself_o in_o our_o image_n and_o so_o heaven_n be_v debase_v in_o creation_n god_n make_v all_o without_o resistance_n he_o speak_v but_o the_o word_n and_o they_o be_v make_v 12._o heb._n 12._o but_o in_o redemption_n he_o suffer_v contradiction_n of_o sinner_n against_o himself_o in_o this_o work_n he_o do_v both_o speak_v work_n and_o suffer_v speak_v gracious_o work_v wonderful_o suffer_v unworthy_o in_o creation_n the_o word_n make_v flesh_n but_o in_o jesus_n our_o redeemer_n 1.3_o john_n 1.3_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n john_n 1.14_o in_o the_o creation_n god_n take_v man_n out_o of_o the_o earth_n and_o place_v he_o in_o paradise_n in_o the_o redemption_n he_o take_v man_n out_o of_o hell_n and_o place_v he_o in_o heaven_n through_o jesus_n the_o saviour_n mathe._n what_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o his_o birth_n phila._n many_o for_o among_o the_o heathen_a voice_n be_v hear_v say_v that_o the_o great_a god_n be_v about_o to_o be_v bear_v at_o rome_n a_o woman_n be_v see_v about_o the_o sun_n have_v a_o child_n in_o her_o arm_n and_o the_o sibyl_n tell_v augustus_n the_o emperor_n that_o that_o same_o child_n be_v great_a than_o he_o and_o bid_v he_o to_o adore_v he_o he_o will_v never_o after_o be_v call_v lord_n the_o temple_n of_o peace_n fall_v down_o at_o his_o birth_n because_o he_o bring_v better_a peace_n to_o the_o world_n the_o oracle_n be_v all_o strike_v dumb_a by_o the_o birth_n of_o this_o eternal_a word_n jupiter_n oak_n in_o dodona_n be_v shake_v the_o cauldron_n smite_v with_o the_o rod_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o jupiter_n the_o tripod_n in_o delphis_n nomi_fw-la nazi_n in_o julian_n annotat_fw-la nomi_fw-la the_o laurel_n and_o fountain_n of_o daphne_n and_o the_o ramfaced_a image_n of_o jupiter_n ammon_n can_v utter_v nothing_o so_o that_o one_o effect_n of_o christ_n birth_n be_v god_n glory_n and_o satan_n confusion_n but_o further_a another_o effect_n be_v the_o good_a man_n peace_n and_o salvation_n for_o he_o be_v bear_v to_o bring_v both_o to_o pass_v 1._o his_o salvation_n be_v he_o be_v bear_v to_o be_v a_o king_n a_o priest_n and_o a_o
will_v their_o law_n and_o god_n word_n their_o rule_n otherwise_o whereas_o they_o may_v be_v the_o balm_n of_o the_o church_n they_o prove_v her_o bane_n as_o many_o have_v do_v namely_o the_o second_o nicen_n synod_n and_o that_o of_o constance_n and_o the_o roman_a under_o innocent_a the_o three_o and_o many_o other_o so_o that_o the_o outward_a communion_n of_o the_o church_n have_v be_v often_o dissolve_v though_o the_o inward_a have_v and_o must_v hold_v among_o the_o faithful_a mathe._n i_o desire_v to_o know_v what_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n be_v phila._n the_o participation_n of_o those_o benefit_n to_o which_o the_o saint_n only_o have_v a_o right_n in_o common_a and_o this_o communion_n they_o have_v with_o god_n and_o of_o his_o benefit_n among_o themselves_o that_o they_o have_v a_o communion_n with_o god_n you_o may_v see_v 1_o john_n 1.3_o 7._o by_o which_o we_o have_v a_o connexion_n and_o union_n with_o he_o by_o love_n of_o he_o towards_o we_o and_o our_o love_n to_o he_o and_o his_o word_n and_o service_n and_o so_o as_o it_o be_v cohabit_v and_o dwell_v one_o in_o and_o with_o another_o john_n 14.23_o as_o a_o father_n with_o his_o child_n by_o providence_n &_o child_n with_o their_o father_n by_o a_o love_a obedience_n and_o this_o communion_n be_v express_v in_o scripture_n particular_o with_o the_o bless_a trinity_n as_o first_o with_o the_o father_n by_o be_v make_v his_o son_n 1_o john_n 3.1_o through_o christ_n by_o faith_n john_n 1.12_o and_o by_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o lead_v we_o into_o all_o save_a truth_n john_n 16.13_o and_o testify_v to_o we_o that_o we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n rom._n 8.16_o 17._o for_o as_o the_o father_n by_o his_o love_n to_o we_o draw_v we_o to_o christ_n john_n 6.44_o so_o christ_n dwell_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o faith_n eph._n 3.12_o and_o the_o spirit_n act_v and_o perfect_v this_o union_n and_o communion_n by_o his_o operation_n through_o his_o spiritual_a grace_n rom._n 8.14_o therefore_o as_o god_n the_o father_n have_v give_v we_o his_o son_n so_o his_o son_n have_v unite_v our_o nature_n to_o himself_o by_o a_o union_n indissoluble_a as_o a_o body_n and_o member_n to_o the_o head_n 1_o cor._n 12.12_o so_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v combine_v he_o and_o the_o saint_n by_o a_o true_a and_o real_a union_n and_o communion_n of_o his_o substance_n not_o by_o his_o body_n be_v in_o we_o or_o we_o in_o he_o but_o as_o the_o branch_n be_v in_o the_o vine_n which_o though_o differ_a in_o sight_n yet_o agree_v in_o connexion_n communication_n and_o assimulation_n by_o this_o spirit_n we_o have_v communion_n with_o christ_n divine_a nature_n because_o it_o dwell_v in_o we_o and_o conform_v we_o to_o itself_o 2_o pet._n 1.4_o and_o also_o with_o his_o human_a nature_n as_o child_n be_v partaker_n of_o the_o same_o flesh_n &_o blood_n heb._n 2.14_o yea_o of_o the_o same_o spirit_n 1._o cor._n 6.17_o and_o of_o his_o suffering_n also_o rom._n 8.17_o that_o we_o may_v be_v glorify_v with_o he_o for_o by_o the_o union_n we_o have_v with_o christ_n be_v obtain_v all_o the_o benefit_n of_o his_o birth_n death_n resurrection_n and_o ascension_n speak_v of_o before_o together_o with_o all_o the_o bless_a effect_n thereof_o wronght_n in_o we_o as_o free_a justification_n regeneration_n adoption_n and_o freedom_n from_o sin_n satan_n and_o the_o sinful_a world_n with_o all_o the_o consequent_n thereof_o which_o be_v remission_n of_o sin_n resurrection_n of_o our_o body_n and_o life_n eternal_a all_o which_o be_v seal_v to_o we_o by_o the_o two_o sacrament_n baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n by_o both_o which_o we_o have_v communion_n with_o christ_n for_o all_o that_o be_v baptize_v into_o christ_n have_v put_v on_o christ_n gal._n 3.27_o and_o the_o cup_n of_o blessing_n and_o the_o sacramental_a bread_n be_v the_o blood_n and_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o faith_n 1_o cor._n 10.16_o mathe._n what_o need_n be_v there_o of_o two_o sacrament_n since_o both_o of_o they_o have_v relation_n to_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n phila._n he_o that_o do_v first_o institute_v they_o know_v best_o the_o reason_n of_o appoint_v two_o and_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v the_o express_a mind_n of_o christ_n set_v forth_o baptism_n to_o we_o as_o the_o sacrament_n of_o initiation_n or_o entrance_n or_o first_o graft_v into_o christ_n and_o his_o mystical_a body_n the_o church_n the_o other_o as_o the_o sacrament_n of_o sustentation_n by_o which_o we_o be_v with_o the_o word_n nourish_v up_o to_o life_n eternal_a therefore_o st_n paul_n rom._n 6.5_o call_v baptism_n a_o plant_n into_o the_o similitude_n of_o christ_n death_n and_o rom._n 11.17_o he_o say_v the_o gentile_n be_v graft_v into_o the_o true_a olive_n which_o no_o doubt_n be_v at_o first_o by_o the_o word_n of_o faith_n preach_v and_o baptism_n receive_v and_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o communion_n be_v represent_v to_o we_o as_o food_n to_o which_o christ_n have_v some_o respect_n john_n 6.55_o say_n my_o flesh_n be_v meat_n indeed_o though_o he_o explain_v it_o afterward_o in_o a_o spiritual_a sense_n ver_fw-la 63._o saying_n the_o spirit_n quicken_v the_o flesh_n profit_v nothing_o it_o be_v true_a that_o there_o be_v no_o clear_a analogy_n between_o graft_v and_o wash_v except_o we_o consider_v the_o subject_n of_o that_o sacrament_n in_o divers_a respect_n 1._o as_o a_o wild_a tree_n and_o so_o by_o baptism_n one_o be_v say_v to_o be_v graft_v because_o it_o be_v a_o mean_v ordain_v for_o our_o admittance_n into_o the_o stock_n 2._o if_o we_o consider_v man_n as_o a_o pollute_a infant_n in_o birth_n natural_a so_o wash_v be_v proper_a ezek._n 16.4_o 5._o and_o therefore_o baptism_n be_v call_v the_o wash_n of_o regeneration_n or_o the_o new_a birth_n and_o differ_v as_o much_o from_o the_o other_o sacrament_n in_o the_o thing_n signify_v as_o in_o the_o sign_n for_o the_o sign_n of_o one_o be_v water_n of_o the_o other_o wine_n so_o the_o thing_n signify_v in_o the_o one_o be_v the_o all-cleansing_a spirit_n of_o god_n john_n 3.5_o which_o in_o effectual_a baptism_n operate_v with_o the_o water_n the_o thing_n signify_v by_o the_o other_o be_v the_o all-cleansing_a blood_n of_o christ_n not_o but_o that_o both_o be_v in_o both_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n concur_v with_o baptism_n through_o the_o efficacy_n of_o it_o though_o not_o signify_v by_o it_o and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o communion_n by_o his_o powerful_a operation_n convey_v the_o efficacy_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n to_o every_o believer_n mathe._n though_o baptism_n be_v but_o the_o sacrament_n of_o entrance_n yet_o there_o be_v many_o tender_a mind_n who_o can_v comfortal_o bring_v child_n to_o it_o as_o there_o be_v many_o be_v fearful_a of_o their_o own_o unworthiness_n and_o to_o partake_v with_o such_o as_o be_v not_o fit_a as_o they_o suppose_v to_o abstain_v from_o the_o lord_n table_n i_o pray_v therefore_o to_o help_v i_o therein_o that_o i_o be_v strengthen_v i_o may_v comfort_v other_o phil._n first_o i_o know_v no_o reason_n why_o any_o christian_n shall_v doubt_v of_o bring_v their_o child_n to_o baptism_n for_o the_o reason_n i_o have_v already_o show_v but_o beside_o if_o christ_n do_v admit_v child_n that_o be_v carry_v in_o people_n arm_n to_o his_o person_n for_o a_o blessing_n 18.15_o luke_n 18.15_o no_o doubt_n they_o may_v be_v admit_v to_o baptism_n where_o his_o blessing_n be_v to_o be_v expect_v especial_o there_o be_v no_o other_o ordinance_n appoint_v whereby_o we_o may_v bring_v child_n to_o he_o but_o this_o and_o that_o we_o find_v no_o prohibition_n in_o scripture_n against_o it_o and_o whereas_o some_o say_v they_o may_v not_o because_o they_o have_v not_o faith_n they_o can_v prove_v they_o have_v none_o because_o christ_n say_v there_o be_v little_a one_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o baptis_fw-la greg._n decret_a lib._n 3._o cap._n ●_o de_fw-fr baptis_fw-la nor_o can_v they_o prove_v that_o none_o may_v be_v baptize_v that_o believe_v not_o for_o simon_n magus_n be_v if_o they_o say_v that_o he_o make_v a_o confession_n of_o it_o i_o say_v they_o may_v make_v a_o better_a confession_n and_o profession_n by_o their_o parent_n and_o witness_n than_o he_o do_v by_o himself_o or_o if_o there_o be_v a_o text_n contain_v these_o word_n he_o that_o believe_v not_o shall_v not_o be_v baptize_v will_v discreet_a man_n think_v it_o mean_v only_o of_o those_o that_o can_v hear_v and_o understand_v and_o not_o of_o infant_n who_o can_v understand_v no_o more_o than_o that_o place_n of_o st_n mark_n 16.16_o include_v infant_n damnation_n where_o christ_n say_v he_o that_o believe_v not_o shall_v be_v damn_v and_o what_o forbid_v we_o to_o believe_v that_o be_v god_n work_v without_o mean_n upon_o
in_o those_o time_n which_o be_v not_o competent_a with_o we_o abraham_n to_o make_v his_o half_a sister_n his_o wife_n jacob_n to_o have_v many_o wife_n which_o be_v not_o competent_a with_o other_o age_n 2.15_o mal._n 2.15_o and_o therefore_o reprove_v by_o the_o prophet_n so_o neither_o be_v those_o action_n imitable_a which_o many_o be_v agitate_a to_o by_o zeal_n and_o fervour_n of_o spirit_n for_o god_n cause_n as_o that_o of_o moses_n to_o excite_v one_o brother_n to_o slay_v another_o nor_o that_o of_o phineas_n in_o transfer_v zimri_n and_o cosbi_n for_o what_o action_n be_v exorbitant_a from_o common_a law_n be_v not_o to_o be_v make_v exemplar_n mathe._n what_o may_v we_o judge_v of_o those_o that_o be_v call_v apocryphal_a book_n ph._n we_o be_v to_o think_v they_o as_o help_v to_o understand_v scripture_n in_o many_o place_n especial_o solomon_n mac._n wisd_v and_o eccl._n judith_n toby_n esdras_n mac._n and_o to_o know_v the_o state_n of_o the_o jew_n before_o the_o prophet_n malachies_n time_n in_o their_o captivity_n and_o after_o it_o also_o and_o so_o neither_o to_o contemn_v they_o nor_o yet_o to_o build_v our_o faith_n upon_o all_o thing_n there_o write_v as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n injoin_v people_n to_o do_v under_o penalty_n of_o a_o curse_n as_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v the_o canonical_a scripture_n trid._n conc._n trid._n but_o to_o try_v what_o analogy_n they_o hold_v with_o truth_n and_o so_o make_v use_n of_o they_o as_o in_o heb._n 11.35_o take_v a_o instance_n of_o faith_n from_o the_o mother_n of_o seven_o son_n 2_o machab._n 7.7_o mathe._n some_o make_v doubt_n of_o the_o scripture_n canonicalness_n because_o they_o say_v there_o be_v more_o book_n in_o the_o world_n than_o we_o have_v insert_v in_o our_o bibles_n and_o all_o that_o we_o have_v in_o our_o account_n canonical_a be_v not_o think_v to_o be_v so_o phila._n you_o need_v not_o trouble_v yourself_o with_o that_o but_o rather_o make_v a_o holy_a use_n of_o that_o we_o have_v by_o building_n ourselves_o up_o in_o our_o holy_a faith_n and_o thank_v god_n that_o he_o have_v reserve_v for_o we_o by_o his_o church_n a_o copy_n of_o sacred_a writ_n sufficient_a for_o our_o salvation_n which_o be_v write_v that_o we_o may_v believe_v and_o the_o rest_n lose_v or_o leave_v out_o 21.25_o john_n 21.25_o that_o we_o may_v not_o look_v after_o more_o than_o be_v necessary_a the_o jew_n reckon_v but_o 22_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n we_o find_v more_o 4._o joseph_n cent_n appion_n vid._n council_n lao._n de_fw-fr lib._n canon_n magd._n cent_n 4._o fol._n 838._o c._n 4._o yet_o they_o contain_v as_o much_o as_o we_o have_v but_o their_o compile_n differ_v from_o we_o and_o these_o be_v consign_v by_o ezra_n the_o scribe_n after_o the_o return_n from_o babylon_n in_o the_o time_n of_o hag_n zachary_n and_o malachy_n all_o in_o hebrew_n which_o tongue_n though_o it_o be_v a_o good_a sign_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o the_o only_a sign_n for_o many_o of_o the_o apocryphal_a book_n be_v so_o write_v at_o first_o as_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la seem_v to_o be_v by_o the_o preface_n a_o book_n of_o great_a worth_n and_o next_o sure_a to_o the_o wisdom_n of_o solomon_n so_o tobit_n and_o the_o four_o of_o esdras_n but_o rather_o the_o consignation_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n and_o their_o continual_a receipt_n of_o they_o for_o such_o synop._n atha_n in_o synop._n so_o some_o write_v of_o more_o psalm_n of_o david_n than_o 150._o but_o if_o we_o shall_v admit_v of_o more_o i_o fear_v it_o will_v encourage_v many_o self_n conceit_v man_n to_o make_v psalm_n too_o under_o pretence_n that_o they_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n as_o well_o as_o david_n as_o do_v some_o in_o the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n 59_o conc._n lao._n ut_fw-la supra_fw-la c._n 59_o and_o urge_v for_o it_o joel_n 2._o your_o son_n and_o daughter_n shall_v prophesy_v which_o council_n exclude_v or_o at_o least_o omit_v the_o epistle_n to_o the_o colossian_n and_o the_o apocalypse_v yet_o it_o reckon_v 14_o epistle_n of_o st_n paul_n of_o which_o that_o to_o the_o colossian_n must_v be_v one_o or_o else_o there_o be_v but_o 13._o 7._o kirstonius_n in_o arab._n note_n on_o the_o evangel_n calv._n vid._n bod._n method_n hist_o c._n 7._o and_o why_o the_o apocalypse_v be_v leave_v out_o it_o may_v be_v be_v because_o more_o late_o write_v and_o divulge_v except_o the_o council_n be_v of_o their_o mind_n who_o reckon_v it_o apocrypha_fw-la or_o they_o who_o slight_v it_o as_o ambrese_n do_v persius_n the_o satirist_n because_o of_o its_o obscurity_n we_o read_v also_o of_o the_o gospel_n of_o st_n thomas_n and_o st_n bartholomew_n all_o which_o be_v nothing_o to_o we_o so_o long_o as_o we_o know_v that_o our_o old_a testament_n and_o the_o jew_n agree_v together_o still_o and_o be_v the_o same_o they_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n and_o for_o the_o new_a testament_n we_o have_v those_o that_o have_v be_v general_o receive_v as_o orthodoxal_a by_o the_o church_n and_o for_o 1300_o year_n together_o consign_v as_o canonical_a by_o the_o council_n as_o nice_a laodicea_n and_o carthage_n mathe._n but_o whether_o have_v not_o the_o jew_n corrupt_v the_o old_a testament_n phila._n 1._o aug._n aug._n they_o will_v not_o certain_o out_o of_o envy_n to_o the_o gentile_n rob_v their_o own_o posterity_n of_o the_o truth_n philo._n philo._n beside_o they_o hold_v it_o as_o a_o sin_n inexpiable_a so_o to_o do_v 37._o polanus_fw-la leb_n 1._o cap._n 37._o and_o will_v die_v a_o hundred_o death_n rather_o than_o change_v one_o jot_n of_o they_o they_o know_v also_o that_o the_o world_n be_v create_v for_o the_o scripture_n sake_n and_o therefore_o the_o world_n will_v be_v turn_v to_o a_o chaos_n ere_o they_o shall_v be_v alter_v and_o so_o they_o be_v faithful_a trustee_n rom._n 3.2_o but_o 2._o they_o can_v not_o do_v it_o for_o there_o be_v so_o many_o copy_n disperse_v by_o reason_n of_o their_o dispersion_n over_o the_o world_n that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o corrupt_v it_o bellarm._n bellarm._n beside_o certain_o god_n will_v not_o suffer_v that_o to_o be_v corrupt_v by_o which_o he_o mean_v to_o save_v the_o world_n and_o therefore_o christ_n say_v 16.17_o luke_n 16.17_o that_o not_o one_o iota_fw-la shall_v perish_v till_o heaven_n and_o earth_n pass_v away_o mat._n 5.18_o and_o 3._o they_o do_v not_o for_o than_o they_o will_v above_o all_o other_o place_n expunge_v or_o alter_v those_o that_o relate_v to_o christ_n as_o esa_n 7._o ver_fw-la 14._o behold_v a_o virgin_n shall_v conceive_v bethulah_n gnalemah_o bethulah_n not_o a_o young_a woman_n for_o that_o have_v be_v no_o wonder_n nor_o worth_a the_o world_n behold_v so_o esa_n 9.6_o to_o we_o a_o child_n be_v bear_v and_o a_o son_n be_v give_v call_v wonderful_a etc._n etc._n nor_o do_v they_o deface_v his_o passion_n though_o they_o deform_v he_o foreprophecy_v so_o clear_o esa_n 53._o bellarm._n bellarm._n which_o word_n in_o their_o own_o language_n do_v more_o forcible_o convince_v the_o jew_n than_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a do_v as_o in_o psal_n 2.12_o kiss_v the_o son_n bar._n nesheku_n bar._n i._n embrace_v christ_n not_o discipline_n and_o therefore_o certain_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v not_o corrupt_v by_o the_o jew_n 4._o our_o saviour_n never_o charge_v they_o with_o corrupt_v the_o text_n but_o only_o with_o misunderstanding_n or_o misinterpreting_a nor_o any_o of_o the_o father_n in_o their_o writing_n against_o they_o marr._n just_a marr._n except_o one_o for_o wrong_v the_o septuagint_n translation_n so_o that_o it_o be_v void_a of_o corruption_n however_o in_o the_o read_n there_o may_v be_v some_o variation_n yet_o no_o deprvation_n of_o the_o copy_n mathe._n but_o methinks_v they_o deliver_v thing_n impossible_a and_o some_o thing_n contradictory_n and_o some_o thing_n in_o they_o seem_v doubtful_a in_o regard_n of_o difference_n of_o text_n and_o margin_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o diversity_n of_o reading_n in_o the_o new_a phila._n not_o thing_n impossible_a to_o he_o who_o word_n it_o be_v who_o to_o his_o work_n require_v our_o faith_n more_o than_o our_o understanding_n else_o his_o work_n do_v not_o exceed_v magician_n 2._o nor_o be_v there_o any_o contradiction_n in_o they_o if_o you_o observe_v the_o rule_n of_o contradiction_n which_o must_v be_v a_o assertion_n of_o the_o same_o thing_n at_o the_o same_o time_n according_a to_o the_o same_o part_n notion_n or_o apprehension_n you_o must_v know_v therefore_o that_o there_o be_v a_o vast_a difference_n between_o scripture_n and_o other_o book_n for_o they_o do_v not_o omit_v something_n out_o of_o mis-knowledge_n as_o other_o book_n do_v nor_o at_o all_o contradict_v themselves_o but_o sometime_o thing_n be_v omit_v for_o mystery_n sake_n as_o moses_n a_o
most_o accurate_a describer_n of_o genealogy_n leave_v out_o the_o father_n and_o mother_n of_o melchisedeck_v that_o he_o may_v be_v a_o type_n of_o christ_n to_o abraham_n and_o all_o other_o for_o christ_n consider_v simple_o as_o god_n have_v no_o mother_n and_o simple_o as_o man_n he_o have_v no_o father_n not_o that_o melchisedeck_v have_v no_o generation_n though_o not_o in_o the_o genealogy_n a._n heb._n 7.3_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d with_fw-mi arab._n caten_v c._n 31._o fol._n 67_o etc._n etc._n 30._o fol._n 66._o at_o a._n for_o we_o may_v find_v in_o some_o eastern_a writing_n that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o heraclim_n the_o son_n of_o phaleg_n the_o son_n of_o eber._n so_o sometime_o that_o be_v set_v before_o which_o be_v do_v afterward_o to_o stir_v up_o our_o diligence_n to_o search_v as_o 1_o sam._n 16.21_o saul_n entertain_v david_n and_o love_v he_o and_o chap._n 17.55_o saul_n enquire_v who_o son_n he_o be_v so_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o moses_n genealogy_n from_o shem_n to_o abraham_n and_o of_o luke_n from_o abraham_n to_o shem_n in_o which_o we_o find_v two_o nachor_n 11._o gen._n 11._o and_o two_o canaan_n luke_n 2.34_o etc._n etc._n so_o heber_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o nachor_n who_o moses_n set_v down_o for_o the_o son_n of_o selah_n which_o difference_n may_v be_v reconcile_v by_o compare_v the_o hebrew_n account_v with_o the_o grecist_n or_o greek_a jew_n who_o very_o likely_a have_v make_v the_o mistake_n so_o by_o the_o genealogy_n of_o matthew_n jacob_n be_v joseph_n father_n and_o by_o st_n luke_n heli_n be_v his_o father_n but_o jacob_n be_v his_o natural_a father_n and_o heli_n his_o father_n in_o law_n 2._o mat._n 1._o luke_n 2._o by_o have_v mary_n to_o his_o wife_n the_o doctrine_n of_o scripture_n also_o seem_v to_o vary_v but_o do_v not_o and_o be_v reconcile_v by_o distinguish_v as_o st_n paul_n say_v faith_n only_o justifi_v and_o st_n james_n say_v work_v justify_v that_o be_v faith_n only_o justifi_v by_o apply_v christ_n merit_n to_o the_o soul_n but_o faith_n alone_o justifi_v no_o man_n christian_n profession_n but_o that_o be_v justify_v by_o work_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o man_n and_o faith_n itself_o be_v also_o approve_a by_o they_o these_o difference_n do_v vindicate_v the_o scripture_n from_o any_o politic_a or_o crafty_a design_n that_o the_o author_n have_v to_o impose_v upon_o man_n a_o sound_a belief_n by_o continue_v all_o circumstance_n most_o precise_o without_o any_o appear_a difference_n 3._o maimon_n r._n moses_n b._n maimon_n as_o for_o any_o diversity_n of_o reading_n in_o the_o text_n and_o margin_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n there_o be_v way_n and_o book_n of_o direction_n enough_o to_o reconcile_v they_o the_o marginal_a note_n be_v put_v down_o by_o the_o member_n of_o their_o great_a synagogue_n jew_n manasseh_n b._n israel_n his_o conciliator_n vet_z testam_fw-la r._n isaac_n jacob_n and_o elias_n levit_n a_o modern_a jew_n who_o make_v the_o consignment_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n such_o as_o be_v daniel_n ezra_n haggai_n zacharie_n and_o malachi_n and_o that_o not_o because_o the_o text_n be_v doubtful_a but_o for_o some_o mystery_n mathe._n but_o we_o find_v divers_a book_n reject_v by_o some_o church_n phila._n if_o they_o reject_v they_o upon_o reason_n no_o doubt_n other_o church_n find_v as_o great_a reason_n to_o receive_v and_o hold_v they_o and_o i_o know_v not_o why_o one_o reason_n shall_v not_o prevail_v with_o you_o to_o hold_v they_o as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o to_o doubt_v of_o they_o i_o know_v ecclesiastes_n be_v condemn_v by_o some_o as_o a_o book_n maintain_v epicurism_n but_o it_o be_v rather_o solomon_n recantation_n in_o the_o beginning_n cry_v down_o all_o for_o vanity_n and_o in_o the_o end_n conclude_v the_o sum_n of_o man_n duty_n other_o take_v the_o canticle_n for_o a_o love-ditty_n make_v to_o pharaoh_n daughter_n but_o many_o of_o the_o expression_n of_o it_o be_v not_o compatible_a with_o womanhood_n nor_o beauty_n cant._n 7.4_o it_o be_v rather_o a_o spiritual_a song_n full_o of_o antiphona_n and_o responsory_n betwixt_o christ_n and_o his_o and_o his_o church_n 1._o rab._n abr._n aben_n ezra_n in_o cant_v cap._n 1._o the_o jew_n that_o best_o know_v their_o own_o canon_n say_v that_o it_o be_v abominable_a to_o think_v that_o this_o book_n treat_v of_o venereal_a matter_n indeed_o it_o be_v the_o rare_a and_o most_o excellent_a not_o only_o of_o many_o which_o solomon_n make_v to_o whit_n as_o some_o say_v 1005._o but_o also_o the_o best_a of_o any_o other_o in_o sacred_a writ_n because_o it_o contain_v in_o it_o doctrine_n of_o all_o sort_n porphyr_n porphyr_n so_o some_o say_v the_o prophecy_n of_o daniel_n be_v but_o a_o history_n write_v after_o the_o thing_n there_o write_v be_v do_v namely_o in_o the_o time_n of_o antiochus_n but_o indeed_o the_o book_n be_v deliver_v to_o king_n alexander_n by_o jaddus_n the_o high_a priest_n 150._o year_n before_o that_o time_n other_o refuse_v the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n because_o it_o have_v not_o the_o name_n of_o the_o author_n set_v to_o it_o they_o may_v as_o well_o reject_v the_o book_n of_o judge_n and_o ruth_n but_o this_o epistle_n be_v always_o receive_v in_o the_o greek_a church_n as_o for_o the_o latin_a church_n it_o make_v too_o bold_a with_o scripture_n to_o put_v in_o or_o to_o dash_v out_o of_o it_o at_o her_o pleasure_n so_o some_o have_v question_v the_o epistle_n of_o st_n james_n and_o peter_n second_o epistle_n and_o johns_n three_o epistle_n yet_o upon_o debate_n they_o have_v be_v receive_v and_o therefore_o now_o the_o less_o to_o be_v doubt_v mathe._n but_o some_o regard_n scripture_n not_o to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o more_o for_o the_o canon_n 6.63_o john_n 1.1_o 1_o john_n 1.1_o john_n 6.63_o for_o they_o say_v the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v god_n himself_o and_o that_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v the_o word_n and_o that_o god_n word_n be_v spirit_n and_o life_n not_o the_o letter_n for_o the_o letter_n kill_v phila._n you_o may_v easy_o answer_v these_o thus_o ask_v they_o from_o whence_o have_v they_o these_o argument_n against_o the_o write_a word_n but_o in_o the_o write_a word_n if_o they_o allow_v not_o the_o write_a word_n from_o whence_o they_o have_v these_o to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n their_o argument_n against_o the_o write_a word_n be_v nothing_o if_o they_o do_v allow_v it_o so_o to_o be_v than_o they_o make_v god_n to_o fight_v against_o himself_o we_o know_v that_o a_o word_n of_o god_n there_o be_v that_o may_v be_v call_v himself_o as_o 1._o the_o word_n essential_a in_o the_o divine_a mind_n 1._o genesis_n 1._o as_o when_o god_n say_v i._o the_o trinity_n say_v or_o determine_v let_v we_o make_v man_n this_o word_n can_v be_v any_o thing_n but_o god_n nor_o divide_v from_o god_n no_o more_o than_o thought_n can_v be_v from_o our_o mind_n 2._o hence_o be_v the_o word_n personal_a and_o so_o christ_n be_v the_o word_n beget_v before_o all_o world_n by_o who_o the_o world_n and_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v and_o he_o be_v call_v god_n 3._o hence_o be_v the_o word_n prophorical_a or_o enuntiative_a which_o god_n give_v by_o his_o spirit_n divers_a way_n to_o man_n as_o by_o vision_n dream_n inspiration_n and_o by_o a_o audible_a voice_n this_o be_v not_o call_v proper_o god_n though_o the_o fountain_n of_o it_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v god_n the_o first_o of_o these_o word_n be_v immanent_a and_o consultative_a the_o second_o be_v emanent_fw-la and_o generative_a the_o three_o be_v proceedent_n and_o communicative_a and_o therefore_o communicate_v god_n will_v declarative_o to_o certain_a man_n who_o speak_v and_o write_v as_o they_o be_v inspire_v by_o that_o divine_a spirit_n who_o writing_n the_o scripture_n be_v and_o be_v as_o improper_o call_v god_n as_o god_n may_v be_v call_v the_o bible_n the_o four_o be_v the_o word_n operative_a or_o efficacious_a god_n spiritual_a benediction_n of_o it_o to_o we_o but_o these_o man_n must_v pretend_v to_o some_o hide_a way_n to_o make_v the_o world_n wonder_v a_o while_n and_o at_o last_o to_o smile_v at_o their_o simplicity_n who_o be_v not_o content_a to_o hear_v god_n speak_v in_o his_o word_n but_o must_v turn_v the_o word_n into_o god_n himself_o and_o so_o make_v he_o or_o it_o a_o kind_n of_o idol_n mathe._n but_o man_n doubt_v it_o because_o their_o translation_n be_v differ_v phila._n either_o the_o scripture_n must_v be_v translate_v or_o else_o be_v never_o like_a to_o be_v know_v to_o the_o world_n abroad_o 2._o they_o must_v be_v translate_v as_o every_o language_n will_v bear_v or_o else_o they_o will_v not_o be_v well_o understand_v ecclus_n vid._n preface_n to_o ecclus_n now_o be_v so_o do_v
the_o mother_n affection_n the_o more_o to_o the_o child_n and_o child_n affection_n the_o more_o to_o the_o mother_n who_o she_o may_v just_o adjure_v upon_o just_a occasion_n by_o the_o pap_n which_o they_o have_v suck_v when_o she_o so_o love_o embrace_v they_o which_o no_o bruit_n can_v do_v mathe._n what_o contemplation_n yield_v the_o inward_a part_n phila._n the_o lung_n by_o which_o we_o breath_n and_o speak_v be_v place_v near_o the_o heart_n show_v that_o speech_n be_v the_o interpreter_n of_o the_o heart_n and_o therefore_o we_o shall_v not_o breathe_v out_o one_o thing_n and_o think_v another_o but_o every_o man_n speak_v truth_n to_o his_o neighbour_n and_o not_o practice_v equivocation_n and_o mental_a reservation_n so_o the_o rib_n show_v the_o care_n of_o god_n to_o defend_v the_o vital_a part_n comprise_v in_o the_o heart_n and_o the_o liver_n well_o express_v in_o scripture_n by_o abner_n his_o smite_v asahel_n under_o the_o five_o rib_n and_o joabs_n smite_v he_o and_o also_o amasa_n in_o the_o same_o place_n and_o by_o the_o soldier_n pierce_v christ_n there_o about_o that_o rib_n where_o hang_v the_o pericardia_fw-la out_o of_o which_o issue_v water_n and_o blood_n to_o all_o which_o pectoral_n syria-paraphra_a john_n 19.34_o vid._n syria-paraphra_a if_o we_o add_v the_o breastplate_n of_o righteousness_n the_o spiritual_a heart_n will_v be_v the_o safe_a so_o the_o bowel_n may_v mind_v we_o of_o the_o bowel_n of_o compassion_n which_o christ_n have_v mark_v 6.34_o when_o his_o bowel_n do_v yearn_v at_o the_o people_n want_n of_o provision_n so_o the_o word_n signify_v for_o he_o be_v a_o merciful_a highpriest_n heb._n 4.15_o so_o the_o hungry_a gut_n shall_v put_v we_o in_o mind_n of_o fast_v till_o we_o feel_v that_o part_n complain_v and_o remember_v we_o what_o affliction_n of_o soul_n we_o shall_v suffer_v for_o offend_v god_n but_o as_o one_o be_v call_v a_o blind_a gut_n so_o the_o belly_n be_v say_v to_o want_v ear_n to_o hear_v this_o doctrine_n such_o like_a the_o cyclops_n know_v no_o god_n but_o their_o belly_n so_o our_o kidney_n which_o be_v the_o most_o secret_o enclose_v shall_v teach_v we_o to_o walk_v sincere_o with_o god_n who_o search_v the_o reins_o psal_n 139._o lest_o we_o like_v hypocrite_n have_v god_n near_o in_o our_o mouth_n but_o put_v he_o far_o from_o our_o reins_o jer._n 12.1_o for_o want_v of_o this_o we_o see_v what_o man_n be_v come_v to_o as_o appear_v in_o psal_n 5.9_o and_o rom._n ●_o 13_o his_o throat_n be_v a_o open_a sepulchre_n sit_fw-mi swift_a to_o shed_v blood_n his_o right_a hand_n be_v a_o hand_n of_o falsehood_n a_o woman_n beauty_n be_v like_o a_o jewel_n of_o gold_n in_o a_o swine_n snout_n we_o find_v the_o proverb_n too_o true_a the_o proper_a man_n at_o the_o gallows_n and_o the_o fair_a woman_n in_o the_o stew_n so_o that_o we_o may_v cry_v out_o o_o most_o excellent_a soul_n what_o a_o vile_a lodging_n have_v thou_o get_v the_o five_o sense_n that_o have_v their_o beginning_n from_o common_a sense_n which_o can_v judge_v of_o all_o object_n absent_a as_o the_o five_o do_v of_o the_o object_n present_a be_v all_o worthy_a our_o consideration_n as_o to_o behold_v how_o every_o organ_n of_o sense_n have_v his_o proper_a object_n the_o eye_n colour_n the_o ear_n sound_n the_o tongue_n meat_n pleasant_a or_o not_o pleasant_a the_o nose_n odour_n or_o evil_a savour_n the_o nerve_n be_v especial_o the_o seat_n of_o feeling_n as_o well_o as_o the_o mean_n of_o motion_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v in_o every_o part_n the_o sense_n of_o feeling_n be_v in_o every_o part_n and_o the_o other_o four_o be_v in_o the_o head_n only_o and_o though_o they_o be_v so_o near_o in_o seat_n to_o each_o other_o yet_o one_o invade_v not_o another_o nor_o can_v do_v as_o the_o other_o these_o since_o man_n fall_n be_v become_v broker_n to_o set_v our_o heart_n to_o sale_n to_o the_o devil_n and_o the_o world_n for_o the_o price_n of_o a_o few_o momentany_a delight_n and_o so_o the_o precious_a soul_n will_v be_v ravish_v out_o of_o christ_n hand_n but_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n interpose_v and_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n insure_v we_o of_o the_o interpellation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o which_o he_o have_v promise_v to_o marry_v our_o soul_n to_o himself_o in_o righteousness_n and_o everlasting_a glory_n so_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n be_v the_o seat_n of_o passion_n a_o choice_a vessel_n that_o be_v first_o form_v in_o generation_n and_o first_o reform_v in_o spiritual_a regeneration_n and_o as_o it_o first_o life_n so_o it_o die_v last_o so_o the_o life_n of_o grace_n first_o begin_v there_o and_o be_v last_o leave_v there_o this_o be_v that_o which_o god_n strive_v for_o against_o the_o devil_n the_o world_n and_o the_o flesh_n as_o michael_n do_v with_o the_o devil_n for_o moses_n body_n jude_n 9_o but_o when_o we_o answer_v god_n request_n who_o cry_v to_o we_o myson_n give_v i_o thy_o heart_n than_o the_o battle_n cease_v this_o heart_n before_o the_o fall_n be_v like_o the_o holy_a land_n upon_o which_o god_n set_v his_o eye_n day_n and_o night_n or_o like_o the_o ark_n from_o which_o god_n give_v his_o oracle_n for_o the_o answer_n of_o the_o heart_n be_v from_o the_o lord_n or_o like_o a_o throne_n where_o god_n rule_v by_o his_o sceptre_n of_o righteousness_n or_o like_o moses_n table_n wherein_o god_n write_v his_o law_n but_o since_o the_o fall_n that_o man_n set_v up_o idol_n in_o his_o heart_n god_n have_v turn_v it_o as_o jehu_n do_v the_o house_n of_o baal_n into_o a_o draught_n house_n so_o that_o now_o as_o it_o be_v full_a of_o all_o uncleanness_n so_o out_o of_o it_o proceed_v by_o nature_n nothing_o else_o mat._n 15._o it_o be_v once_o wise_a now_o a_o foolish_a heart_n and_o full_a of_o darkness_n rom._n 1._o it_o be_v once_o more_o inclinable_a to_o the_o right_n but_o now_o the_o left_a hand_n eccles_n 10.2_o which_o make_v we_o do_v all_o thing_n sinister_o mathe._n whether_o be_v man_n body_n immortal_a before_o the_o fall_n phila._n not_o essential_o for_o so_o only_a god_n be_v immortal_a nor_o by_o the_o gift_n of_o creation_n as_o the_o angel_n and_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v but_o potential_o only_a and_o upon_o condition_n if_o he_o have_v continue_v in_o obedience_n which_o he_o not_o do_v his_o body_n can_v be_v make_v immortal_a now_o but_o by_o the_o gift_n of_o a_o new_a creation_n which_o will_v be_v at_o the_o resurrection_n so_o that_o his_o body_n be_v immortal_a natural_o so_o long_o as_o he_o keep_v the_o condition_n of_o immortality_n it_o be_v true_a his_o body_n may_v have_v die_v before_o the_o fall_n for_o it_o be_v as_o possible_a to_o die_v as_o he_o be_v possible_a to_o fall_v but_o this_o possibility_n will_v never_o have_v be_v reduce_v into_o act_n if_o he_o have_v not_o fall_v for_o as_o the_o angel_n can_v not_o die_v neither_o be_v it_o necessary_a they_o shall_v die_v so_o adam_n may_v have_v die_v but_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o without_o sin_n he_o shall_v have_v die_v so_o be_v corrupt_v by_o sin_n it_o be_v necessary_a he_o shall_v die_v but_o not_o before_o he_o fall_v for_o we_o see_v by_o the_o relic_n of_o immortality_n leave_v in_o adam_n that_o the_o father_n before_o the_o flood_n live_v a_o mighty_a great_a age_n as_o adam_n to_o 930_o year_n and_o methuselah_n live_v 969._o which_o be_v not_o so_o many_o moon_n as_o some_o think_v for_o than_o they_o have_v hardly_o reach_v the_o age_n of_o man_n and_o so_o the_o world_n will_v have_v be_v a_o long_a time_n people_n and_o though_o adam_n may_v well_o beget_v sh_v about_o twelve_o year_n after_o his_o creation_n because_o he_o be_v make_v at_o first_o a_o perfect_a man_n yet_o if_o adam_n beget_v not_o his_o three_o son_n till_o he_o be_v 130._o moon_n old_a sure_o then_o sh_v begin_v too_o young_a who_o at_o 105._o year_n from_o his_o birth_n beget_v enos_n which_o by_o the_o moon_n account_n be_v but_o eight_o year_n and_o five_o month_n but_o sure_o their_o age_n be_v measure_v by_o the_o year_n of_o the_o sun_n i_o twelve_o month_n to_o a_o year_n and_o it_o be_v no_o more_o wonderful_a then_o that_o israel_n clothes_n shall_v last_v forty_o year_n in_o the_o wilderness_n deut._n 29.5_o and_o the_o manna_n in_o the_o golden_a pot_n many_o hundred_o of_o year_n joseph_n bone_n 215._o year_n joshua_n 24.32_o and_o the_o mummy_n of_o egypt_n be_v keep_v by_o art_n so_o many_o 1000_o year_n in_o full_a proportion_n as_o when_o alive_a what_o can_v not_o god_n have_v do_v to_o the_o body_n of_o adam_n if_o he_o have_v not_o sin_v mathe._n whether_o be_v man_n soul_n immortal_a phila._n yea_o and_o it_o may_v be_v
proved-first_a from_o the_o opposition_n that_o be_v between_o the_o life_n of_o a_o beast_n and_o a_o man_n a_o beast_n life_n perish_v because_o it_o end_v in_o the_o sensitive_a faculty_n who_o organ_n be_v destroy_v their_o life_n be_v at_o a_o end_n for_o they_o can_v work_v beyond_o the_o sensitive_a faculty_n because_o they_o want_v reason_n and_o understanding_n psal_n 32.9_o be_v not_o like_o the_o horse_n that_o have_v no_o understanding_n or_o reason_n and_o you_o may_v see_v they_o have_v none_o because_o all_o creature_n of_o the_o same_o kind_n work_v alike_o in_o all_o they_o do_v as_o the_o swallow_n build_v all_o alike_o and_o the_o spider_n weave_v all_o alike_o and_o beyond_o it_o they_o can_v proceed_v but_o man_n operation_n be_v divers_a one_o from_o another_o beside_o the_o desire_n of_o the_o creature_n be_v not_o to_o any_o eternity_n but_o to_o the_o present_a preservation_n of_o itself_o and_o it_o kind_a but_o man_n desire_n reach_v high_a so_o the_o delight_n of_o a_o beast_n be_v mere_o in_o thing_n sensual_a and_o therefore_o it_o act_v only_o by_o the_o body_n because_o life_n be_v settle_v only_o in_o the_o blood_n levit._n 17.11_o but_o man_n can_v delight_v in_o thing_n beyond_o all_o sense_n natural_a 1_o pet._n 1.8_o as_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n who_o they_o have_v not_o yet_o see_v and_o indeed_o if_o man_n soul_n be_v not_o immortal_a than_o it_o may_v desire_v thing_n beyond_o itself_o and_o so_o all_o its_o desire_n shall_v be_v frustrate_a which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o end_n of_o nature_n operation_n who_o have_v make_v nothing_o in_o vain_a and_o therefore_o whatsoever_o the_o soul_n do_v natural_o desire_v without_o sin_n be_v to_o be_v have_v either_o here_o or_o hereafter_o and_o therefore_o if_o the_o soul_n have_v a_o desire_n to_o be_v happy_a and_o free_a from_o misery_n or_o to_o have_v a_o be_v when_o the_o body_n be_v dissolve_v certain_o it_o flow_v from_o the_o immortality_n of_o its_o nature_n a_o shadow_n whereof_o appear_v in_o man_n desire_n to_o live_v in_o memory_n or_o in_o posterity_n in_o building_n or_o purchase_n psal_n 49.12_o and_o 2_o sam._n 18.18_o 2._o we_o find_v the_o soul_n to_o be_v incorporeal_a for_o it_o can_v comprehend_v thing_n not_o only_o singular_a but_o universal_a and_o the_o kind_n of_o all_o thing_n 3._o it_o be_v immortal_a that_o it_o may_v receive_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n which_o it_o have_v not_o here_o for_o here_o the_o wicked_a flourish_n jer._n 12._o as_o dives_n do_v luke_n 15._o thou_o have_v thy_o pleasure_n and_o lazarus_n pain_n 4._o beside_o it_o appear_v also_o by_o god_n covenant_n with_o his_o people_n it_o be_v everlasting_a they_o must_v also_o be_v so_o or_o else_o the_o covenant_n cease_v to_o be_v but_o they_o never_o cease_v to_o exist_v as_o mat._n 22.32_o all_o live_v to_o god_n he_o be_v god_n of_o the_o live_n of_o those_o soul_n that_o be_v bind_v up_o in_o the_o bundle_n of_o life_n 2_o sam._n 25.29_o with_o the_o spirit_n of_o just_a man_n make_v perfect_a heb._n 12.23_o mathe._n how_o be_v the_o soul_n unite_v to_o the_o body_n phila._n by_o god_n divine_a concurrence_n in_o generation_n which_o be_v man_n form_n do_v by_o its_o two_o faculty_n of_o sense_n and_o vegetation_n in_o forty_o day_n prepare_v the_o matter_n to_o receive_v its_o quicken_a power_n and_o so_o body_n and_o soul_n make_v one_o person_n the_o soul_n be_v so_o unite_v to_o it_o as_o that_o the_o body_n can_v neither_o live_v nor_o be_v call_v man_n without_o it_o and_o her_o be_v in_o the_o body_n be_v wonderful_a not_o as_o a_o man_n in_o his_o house_n which_o will_v stand_v though_o the_o man_n go_v out_o nor_o as_o a_o spider_n in_o the_o web_n who_o set_v in_o the_o centre_n of_o it_o feel_v the_o touch_n of_o every_o cord_n but_o as_o the_o light_n diffuse_v itself_o through_o the_o whole_a air_n and_o be_v neither_o corrupt_v nor_o divide_v so_o be_v the_o soul_n whole_a in_o the_o whole_a body_n and_o whole_a in_o every_o part_n of_o it_o and_o as_o the_o sun_n have_v divers_a operation_n in_o divers_a part_n of_o the_o world_n make_v spring_n in_o one_o place_n and_o harvest_n in_o another_o so_o do_v the_o soul_n work_v diverse_o in_o our_o body_n by_o attraction_n decoction_n quicken_a and_o make_v we_o to_o grow_v and_o by_o this_o union_n do_v only_o animate_v that_o body_n in_o which_o it_o be_v nor_o can_v it_o any_o other_o as_o some_o learned_a have_v think_v 1.21_o pythag._n and_o the_o jew_n as_o john_n 1.21_o for_o every_o body_n of_o the_o same_o kind_n be_v determine_v to_o his_o own_o soul_n nor_o can_v receive_v any_o other_o nor_o can_v the_o soul_n animat_fw-la any_o other_o body_n but_o its_o own_o to_o which_o it_o be_v determine_v therefore_o when_o separate_v they_o long_o for_o their_o own_o body_n rev._n 6.10_o mathe._n what_o be_v the_o image_n of_o god_n in_o man_n phila._n some_o quality_n that_o have_v analogy_n and_o bear_v some_o likeness_n with_o god_n and_o that_o be_v holy_a knowledge_n righteousness_n and_o dominion_n for_o you_o must_v know_v that_o this_o image_n be_v not_o god_n personal_a image_n for_o that_o be_v christ_n as_o heb._n 1.1_o 2._o but_o his_o essential_a image_n and_o therefore_o say_v he_o let_v we_o make_v man_n after_o our_o image_n not_o my_o image_n i._o the_o image_n of_o god_n in_o trinity_n but_o by_o regeneration_n he_o shall_v be_v conform_v to_o his_o personal_a image_n that_o be_v unto_o christ_n as_o rom._n 8._o those_o who_o he_o foreknow_v they_o he_o predestinate_v to_o be_v conform_v to_o the_o image_n of_o his_o son_n 2._o that_o this_o image_n consist_v not_o in_o bodily_a shape_n for_o god_n have_v none_o nor_o to_o his_o perfect_a image_n but_o that_o he_o be_v make_v according_a to_o god_n image_n formal_o that_o be_v to_o the_o example_n that_o god_n purpose_v in_o his_o mind_n nor_o be_v he_o obsignate_v and_o seal_v with_o the_o holy_a spirit_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o perseverance_n for_o than_o he_o can_v not_o have_v fall_v but_o he_o be_v create_v in_o holiness_n negative_o as_o be_v no_o way_n guilty_a of_o vain_a knowledge_n nor_o injustice_n nor_o to_o slavery_n subject_v therefore_o st_n paul_n say_v 15._o 1_o cor._n 15._o that_o he_o be_v make_v but_o a_o live_a soul_n i._n possible_a to_o live_v ever_o and_o to_o get_v child_n to_o the_o same_o image_n but_o can_v not_o convey_v to_o they_o any_o quicken_a grace_n to_o make_v they_o certain_a of_o ever_o stand_a but_o the_o second_o adam_n be_v make_v a_o quicken_a spirit_n to_o perform_v that_o mathe._n to_o what_o end_n do_v god_n make_v man_n thus_o phila._n sure_o that_o he_o may_v glorify_v he_o by_o have_v respect_n to_o he_o that_o make_v he_o like_o a_o circle_n which_o be_v a_o most_o perfect_a figure_n because_o it_o return_v to_o the_o point_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v first_o deduce_v all_o good_a man_n be_v like_o this_o but_o those_o that_o run_v straight_o on_o from_o and_o return_v not_o be_v in_o the_o way_n to_o hell_n god_n cry_v to_o we_o to_o return_v o_o shulamite_n return_n because_o he_o be_v a_o most_o wise_a spirit_n think_v fit_a among_o all_o the_o creature_n to_o have_v one_o kind_n of_o understand_a creature_n that_o may_v return_v to_o he_o by_o praise_n and_o honour_n of_o he_o not_o passive_o as_o the_o common_a creature_n set_v forth_o his_o praise_n occasional_o but_o active_o and_o direct_o to_o give_v he_o the_o honour_n due_a unto_o his_o name_n with_o our_o heart_n tongue_n and_o life_n mathe._n if_o the_o soul_n have_v no_o existence_n till_o by_o generation_n and_o by_o god_n concurrence_n it_o be_v unite_v to_o the_o body_n what_o existence_n have_v it_o after_o death_n when_o it_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o body_n i_o conceive_v not_o phila._n god_n have_v a_o immediate_a act_n in_o the_o soul_n production_n though_o by_o propagation_n it_o can_v be_v dissolve_v but_o by_o that_o power_n who_o give_v it_o first_o a_o beginning_n now_o though_o he_o for_o sin_n dissolve_v the_o body_n which_o consist_v of_o natural_a principle_n for_o a_o while_n till_o he_o reunite_v it_o again_o to_o the_o soul_n at_o the_o resurrection_n in_o a_o great_a perfection_n yet_o we_o read_v not_o that_o he_o do_v so_o to_o the_o soul_n but_o they_o live_v to_o he_o who_o be_v not_o the_o god_n of_o the_o dead_a but_o of_o the_o live_a soul_n which_o can_v die_v though_o congenerate_v with_o the_o body_n through_o god_n powerful_a efficacy_n the_o parent_n mediate_a the_o union_n and_o therefore_o as_o it_o be_v a_o spiritual_a be_v it_o may_v very_o well_o exist_v after_o separation_n from_o the_o body_n and_o live_v and_o understand_v though_o not_o as_o it_o do_v
on_o the_o top_n of_o the_o mountain_n 2.2_o isa_n 2.2_o and_o all_o nation_n shall_v flow_v unto_o it_o so_o in_o the_o sixth_o age_n god_n do_v fulfil_v it_o by_o set_v up_o christ_n who_o be_v lift_v up_o draw_v all_o man_n to_o he_o for_o this_o little_a stone_n dan._n 2.34_o grow_v into_o a_o great_a mountain_n and_o fill_v the_o whole_a earth_n that_o be_v with_o his_o doctrine_n and_o church_n he_o the_o high_a for_o eminency_n and_o his_o church_n by_o universality_n aaron_z be_v chief_a priest_n so_o be_v christ_n but_o yet_o of_o a_o kingly_a line_n which_o aaron_n be_v not_o aaron_z take_v not_o this_o office_n upon_o himself_o of_o his_o own_o will_n but_o be_v call_v of_o god_n so_o be_v christ_n consecrate_v of_o god_n ●_o heb._n 5._o ●_o and_o appoint_v to_o be_v a_o priest_n after_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedeck_v aaron_z be_v wash_v and_o christ_n unspotted_a holy_a harmless_a and_o undefiled_a and_o separate_v from_o sinner_n heb._n 7.26_o he_o be_v anoint_v with_o holy_a oil_n and_o christ_n with_o the_o holy_a spirit_n by_o which_o he_o be_v a_o sweet_a savour_n to_o god_n the_o next_o shadow_n be_v joshua_n who_o name_n in_o hebrew_n be_v all_o one_o with_o jesus_n in_o greek_a joshua_n joshua_n as_o appeareth_z heb._n 4.8_o in_o these_o word_n if_o jesus_n that_o be_v joshua_n have_v give_v they_o rest_n it_o signify_v a_o saviour_n mat._n 1.21_o now_o this_o man_n do_v type_n forth_o christ_n 1._o because_o he_o lead_v israel_n to_o canaan_n and_o be_v their_o captain_n as_o christ_n be_v the_o prince_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o therefore_o call_v himself_o joshua_n 5.14_o the_o captain_n of_o the_o lord_n host_n i._o of_o all_o those_o that_o fight_v under_o his_o banner_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o be_v not_o ashamed_a of_o their_o profession_n 2._o he_o type_v forth_o christ_n by_o circumcise_n all_o that_o be_v to_o enter_v into_o the_o land_n so_o christ_n do_v all_o christian_n by_o a_o circumcision_n spiritual_a put_v off_o the_o body_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o flesh_n by_o the_o circumcision_n of_o christ_n who_o efficacy_n lie_v hide_v in_o baptism_n col._n 2.11_o 12._o which_o take_v off_o the_o shame_n of_o our_o natural_a egyptian_a bondage_n 3._o he_o present_v christ_n who_o will_v one_o day_n dispossess_v the_o earth_n of_o all_o wicked_a person_n that_o the_o meek_a may_v possess_v the_o earth_n promise_v mat._n 5.5_o and_o as_o peter_n say_v we_o look_v for_o a_o new_a earth_n wherein_o dwell_v righteousness_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o death_n do_v slay_v those_o canaanite_n trop_fw-fr origen_n josh_n lect._n &_o in_o trop_fw-fr perizites_n and_o jebusite_n that_o be_v within_o we_o in_o part_n till_o he_o come_v again_o as_o god_n do_v once_o from_o mount_n paran_n to_o israel_n deut._n 33.2_o from_o his_o holiness_n and_o happiness_n to_o divide_v the_o people_n hab._n 3.3_o 6._o 14._o judas_n 14._o and_o then_o shall_v our_o spiritual_a enemy_n be_v tread_v down_o for_o ever_o the_o next_o be_v samson_n samson_n samson_n a_o word_n derive_v of_o shemesh_n his_o sun_n indeed_o he_o shine_v more_o bright_o than_o any_o of_o the_o deliverer_n so_o do_v christ_n the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n above_o all_o mal._n 4.2_o 2._o he_o be_v a_o nazarite_n of_o nazar_n because_o he_o be_v separate_v from_o common_a thing_n as_o the_o razor_n and_o wine_n num._n 6.3_o 4_o 5._o so_o christ_n be_v heb._n 7.26_o separate_v from_o sinner_n 12.2_o rom._n 12.2_o so_o be_v all_o in_o christ_n separate_v from_o the_o common_a course_n of_o the_o world_n for_o christ_n be_v not_o call_v a_o nazarite_n from_o the_o town_n nazareth_n where_o he_o live_v except_o by_o mistake_n but_o from_o his_o call_n ceremonial_a to_o answer_v to_o samson_n his_o type_n for_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o prophet_n verbal_o that_o christ_n shall_v be_v call_v a_o nazarite_n but_o in_o his_o personal_a type_n samson_n 13.15_o judg._n 13.15_o and_o therefore_o st._n matthew_n rather_o allude_v to_o the_o common_a mistake_n of_o the_o people_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v call_v a_o man_n of_o nazareth_n rather_o than_o to_o his_o ceremonial_a office_n a_o nazarite_n according_a to_o our_o english_a translation_n but_o in_o the_o syriach_n it_o be_v naisareth_n of_o naisar_n to_o observe_v or_o keep_v as_o indeed_o the_o nazarite_n do_v their_o vow_n with_o all_o strictness_n and_o so_o from_o the_o city_n the_o place_n of_o his_o dwell_n the_o people_n fulfil_v a_o prophecy_n unwitting_o as_o well_o as_o caiaphas_n and_o the_o soldier_n that_o pierce_v his_o side_n fulfil_v that_o of_o zach._n 12.10_o yea_o pilate_n himself_o call_v he_o in_o his_o superscription_n jesus_n that_o nazarite_n in_o the_o greek_a 7.2_o nazarenus_fw-la in_o loco_fw-la &_o in_o merito_fw-la 1._o sanctue_n vel_fw-la mundus_fw-la quia_fw-la pecetum_fw-la non_fw-la ficit_fw-la isid_n etym._n lib._n 7.2_o he_o mean_v the_o city_n but_o the_o spirit_n that_o guide_v he_o intend_v the_o office_n ceremonial_a of_o christ_n of_o which_o samson_n be_v a_o figure_n prophetical_o speak_v of_o in_o the_o book_n of_o judge_n and_o make_v good_a in_o christ_n conceive_v at_o nazareth_n again_o the_o spirit_n come_v not_o upon_o samson_n till_o he_o be_v a_o complete_a man_n so_o christ_n do_v not_o show_v himself_o till_o thirty_o year_n of_o age_n and_o after_o johns_n baptism_n sampsons_n first_o victory_n be_v over_o a_o lion_n so_o christ_n over_o satan_n that_o roar_a lion_n 70._o mat._n 4._o vid._n aug_n in_o psal_n 70._o that_o seek_v who_o to_o devour_v 1_o pet._n 5.8_o then_o next_o he_o overcome_v the_o philistine_n first_o with_o the_o jaw_n bone_n of_o a_o ass_n so_o christ_n by_o the_o despise_a simplicity_n of_o preach_v overcome_v the_o world_n 1_o cor._n 1.18_o 21._o though_o the_o preacher_n of_o it_o be_v deride_v and_o ride_v of_o the_o world_n for_o it_o like_o ass_n second_o he_o rise_v from_o sleep_n carried_z away_o the_o gate_n of_o azza_n upon_o his_o shoulder_n so_o do_v christ_n rise_v from_o the_o grave_n carry_v away_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n and_o death_n and_o lead_v captivity_n captive_a three_o he_o be_v take_v in_o dalilahs_n lap_n so_o be_v christ_n in_o the_o bond_n of_o poverty_n and_o weakness_n as_o the_o name_n dalilah_n signify_v sampsons_n lock_n be_v cut_v off_o and_o his_o strength_n decay_v but_o christ_n herein_o exceed_v for_o he_o lay_v down_o his_o strength_n willing_o by_o which_o he_o make_v the_o soldier_n before_o fall_v backward_o john_n 18.6_o and_o this_o out_o of_o love_n to_o his_o church_n though_o a_o adulteress_n samson_n be_v flout_v christ_n be_v mock_v but_o at_o last_o samson_n at_o his_o death_n pull_v down_o the_o house_n of_o dagon_n upon_o their_o head_n 17.30_o judg._n 17.30_o and_o so_o slay_v more_o at_o his_o death_n then_o in_o all_o his_o life_n and_o so_o do_v christ_n when_o he_o cry_v it_o be_v finish_v on_o the_o cross_n and_o bow_v his_o head_n than_o be_v sin_n death_n and_o hell_n quell_v at_o once_o though_o not_o triumph_v over_o till_o his_o resurrection_n the_o next_o type_n be_v jehoshuah_n the_o high_a priest_n to_o judah_n jehoshuah_n jehoshuah_n after_o their_o return_n from_o babylon_n at_o the_o rebuild_n of_o the_o temple_n zach._n 3.1_o he_o be_v liken_v to_o a_o branch_n and_o a_o stone_n verse_n 8_o 9_o 10._o and_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o branch_n ver_fw-la 8._o and_o a_o stone_n lay_v before_o jehoshuah_n so_o be_v christ_n the_o corner_n stone_n lay_v before_o the_o priest_n upon_o which_o they_o must_v build_v the_o church_n satan_n stand_v on_o the_o priest_n right_a hand_n but_o be_v reprove_v so_o he_o think_v to_o get_v the_o upper_a hand_n of_o christ_n but_o be_v vanquish_v jehoshuah_n be_v a_o brand_n pull_v out_o of_o the_o fire_n so_o be_v christ_n when_o he_o satisfy_v the_o consume_a fire_n of_o god_n wrath_n say_v it_o be_v finish_v he_o be_v clothe_v in_o filthy_a garment_n and_o so_o be_v christ_n with_o our_o sin_n that_o know_v no_o sin_n in_o himself_o again_o glorious_a garment_n be_v give_v he_o and_o those_o take_v away_o so_o christ_n have_v satisfy_v for_o our_o sin_n mortality_n be_v put_v off_o and_o glory_n and_o immortality_n put_v on_o the_o next_o type_n of_o christ_n be_v cyrus_n though_o a_o uncircumcised_a king_n cyrus_n cyrus_n who_o god_n call_v his_o shepherd_n isa_n 44.28_o and_o cap._n 45.1_o his_o anointed_n we_o be_v to_o observe_v 1._o his_o name_n 2._o his_o country_n 3._o his_o office_n his_o name_n be_v cyrus_n rosh_n compound_v of_o caph_n and_o rosh_n which_o in_o hebrew_n signify_v as_o a_o head_n and_o so_o he_o be_v a_o political_a head_n of_o israel_n return_n from_o the_o captivity_n of_o babylon_n which_o he_o decree_v in_o the_o
dry_a ground_n and_o they_o see_v no_o beauty_n in_o he_o to_o delight_v the_o sense_n yet_o they_o look_v for_o he_o as_o one_o to_o come_v in_o outward_a glory_n and_o to_o be_v a_o worldly_a king_n and_o deliverer_n which_o god_n intend_v not_o 3._o his_o birth_n be_v poor_a and_o private_a little_o take_v notice_n of_o so_o that_o he_o escape_v with_o his_o parent_n into_o egypt_n by_o the_o warn_n of_o a_o angel_n to_o avoid_v the_o massacre_n of_o herod_n and_o return_v afterward_o into_o galilee_n and_o dwell_v in_o nazareth_n they_o have_v easy_o forget_v that_o he_o be_v bear_v at_o bethelem_n and_o out_o of_o nazareth_n they_o expect_v no_o good_a john_n 1.46_o neither_o any_o prophet_n 4._o when_o he_o appear_v among_o they_o because_o he_o be_v no_o sectary_n as_o pharisee_n sadducee_n they_o all_o envy_v he_o and_o slander_v both_o his_o doctrine_n as_o if_o contrary_a to_o moses_n and_o his_o miracle_n as_o if_o do_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o so_o by_o their_o malice_n and_o the_o unjust_a judgement_n of_o pilate_n bring_v he_o to_o the_o ignominious_a death_n of_o the_o cross_n so_o unwitting_o fulfil_v the_o determinate_a counsel_n of_o god_n 5._o 15._o acts._n epiph._n l._n 1._o tom_n 1._o h._n 15._o they_o set_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o elder_n above_o scripture_n 6._o some_o of_o they_o abolish_v moses_n law_n or_o his_o five_o book_n so_o do_v the_o nasorite_n some_o study_v to_o add_v to_o the_o scripture_n as_o the_o chasidim_n after_o the_o captivity_n 10.57_o joseph_n antiq_fw-la l._n 13._o c._n 15._o luke_n 10.57_o and_o will_v be_v holy_a than_o the_o law_n require_v from_o these_o do_v spring_v the_o pharisee_n some_o reject_v all_o the_o scripture_n save_o the_o book_n of_o moses_n as_o do_v the_o sadducee_n and_o deny_v both_o angel_n spirit_n and_o the_o resurrection_n and_o therefore_o confute_v by_o christ_n not_o out_o of_o the_o prophet_n joh._n jansen_n concor_fw-fr in_o mat._n 23._o eman._n s●_n in_o hunc_fw-la locum_fw-la maldonat_fw-la ferus_fw-la aug._n in_o tract_n 46._o in_o joh._n but_o of_o those_o book_n they_o hold_v for_o canonical_a mat._n 22.32_o thus_o heresy_n creep_v into_o moses_n chair_n as_o the_o pope_n have_v bring_v into_o peter_n yet_o christ_n say_v because_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n he_o bid_v the_o people_n do_v as_o they_o say_v that_o be_v so_o far_o as_o they_o teach_v moses_n for_o by_o moses_n chair_n be_v mean_v his_o doctrine_n not_o his_o office_n and_o the_o people_n have_v a_o rule_n to_o try_v it_o by_o for_o the_o jew_n keep_v the_o old_a testament_n entire_a mathe._n what_o punishment_n do_v god_n inflict_v upon_o they_o for_o this_o phila._n he_o take_v away_o from_o they_o sceptre_n and_o mitre_n kingship_n and_o priesthood_n and_o the_o very_a face_n of_o a_o commonwealth_n about_o forty_o year_n after_o christ_n death_n by_o vespasian_n and_o titus_n with_o their_o roman_a army_n as_o be_v foretell_v by_o daniel_n 27._o dan_n 9.26_o 27._o the_o occasion_n whereof_o be_v they_o have_v be_v conquer_v by_o the_o roman_n and_o govern_v by_o their_o deputy_n and_o they_o carry_v a_o hard_a hand_n upon_o they_o they_o rebel_v as_o florus_n who_o succeed_v after_o faelix_fw-la festus_n and_o albinus_n be_v so_o avaritious_a that_o he_o take_v out_o of_o the_o treasury_n of_o the_o temple_n sixteen_o talent_n of_o silver_n and_o when_o the_o jew_n murmur_v at_o it_o he_o permit_v the_o soldier_n to_o slay_v and_o spoil_v the_o citizen_n of_o jerusalem_n at_o pleasure_n and_o scourge_v and_o crucify_v jew_n of_o noble_a birth_n here_o their_o refuse_v christ_n and_o choose_v barrabas_n a_o murderer_n begin_v to_o be_v revenge_v and_o the_o scourge_v and_o crucify_a christ_n to_o be_v retaliate_v and_o his_o blood_n to_o fall_v upon_o their_o child_n this_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o that_o war_n that_o ruin_v jerusalem_n at_o last_o but_o not_o only_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n but_o god_n give_v they_o up_o to_o a_o obstinate_a mind_n for_o their_o malice_n against_o christ_n and_o the_o prophecy_n begin_v to_o take_v upon_o they_o 11.9_o zac._n 11.9_o which_o zachariah_n foretell_v i_o will_v not_o feed_v you_o that_o which_o die_v let_v it_o die_v and_o that_o that_o be_v to_o be_v cut_v off_o let_v it_o be_v cut_v off_o and_o let_v the_o rest_n eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o each_o other_o 11.15_o zach._n 11.15_o the_o two_o staff_n of_o beauty_n and_o band_n be_v break_v and_o the_o instrument_n of_o a_o foolish_a shepherd_n be_v assume_v the_o ecclesiastic_a office_n be_v dispose_v according_a to_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o roman_a deputy_n valerius_n gratus_n pontius_n pilate_n and_o vitellius_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o tiberius_n in_o who_o eighteen_o year_n christ_n be_v crucify_v again_o to_o hasten_v their_o ruin_n caius_n caligula_n succeed_v tiberius_n will_v have_v his_o image_n set_v up_o in_o the_o jew_n temple_n which_o though_o the_o jew_n zealous_a of_o their_o religion_n will_v rather_o die_v then_o suffer_v yet_o it_o excite_v the_o emperor_n malice_n the_o more_o which_o though_o it_o be_v unjust_a in_o he_o yet_o be_v it_o just_a with_o god_n to_o make_v he_o a_o instrument_n to_o punish_v they_o who_o be_v more_o afraid_a to_o defile_v their_o temple_n of_o stone_n then_o to_o destroy_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o who_o dwell_v the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n bodily_a after_o he_o succeed_v claudius_n in_o who_o time_n 20000._o of_o they_o be_v slay_v by_o crowd_v and_o tread_v one_o another_o in_o narrow_a place_n for_o fear_v of_o cumanus_n soldier_n who_o come_v but_o to_o keep_v the_o peace_n because_o they_o begin_v to_o murmur_v much_o and_o the_o insolency_n of_o a_o soldier_n which_o show_v his_o privity_n in_o the_o porch_n of_o the_o temple_n after_o he_o succeed_v domitius_n nero_n 6._o joseph_n antiq_fw-la l._n 20._o c._n 6._o in_o who_o time_n a_o certain_a egyptian_a feign_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o prophet_n draw_v four_o thousand_o man_n after_o he_o who_o faelix_fw-la hensen_n kill_v and_o scatter_v act_v 21.34_o in_o this_o emperor_n day_n florus_n aforesaid_a much_o pilled_a and_o oppress_v they_o after_o this_o domitius_n divers_a contend_v for_o the_o empire_n as_o galba_n otto_n vitellius_n joseph_n vid._n orati_fw-la reg._n agrip._n contra_fw-la rebel_n in_o joseph_n who_o be_v soon_o cut_v off_o and_o vespasian_n choose_v emperor_n in_o who_o time_n the_o jew_n refuse_v to_o offer_v sacrifice_n for_o caesar_n happiness_n former_o and_o usual_o do_v now_o begin_v this_o calamity_n to_o grow_v apace_o for_o 50000._o of_o they_o be_v slay_v at_o alexandria_n 10000_o at_o damascus_n jud._n joseph_n de_fw-fr bello_fw-la jud._n prodigious_a sign_n appear_v both_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n foreshow_v desolation_n a_o comet_n like_o a_o sword_n hang_v over_o jerusalem_n a_o year_n space_n a_o clear_a light_n about_o the_o altar_n at_o midnight_n and_o the_o great_a brazen_a gate_n of_o the_o temple_n open_v of_o itself_o chariot_n of_o fire_n be_v see_v compass_n to_n voice_n be_v hear_v in_o the_o temple_n admonish_v people_n to_o be_v go_v the_o jew_n notwithstanding_o be_v harden_v 3._o euseb_n l._n 3._o c._n 3._o but_o the_o christian_n there_o depart_v as_o corn_n separate_v from_o the_o chaff_n before_o the_o fire_n of_o destruction_n come_v vespasian_n with_o his_o son_n titus_n with_o a_o army_n of_o 60000._o have_v first_o subdue_v many_o of_o the_o jew_n rebellious_a town_n at_o last_o give_v order_n to_o besiege_v jerusalem_n which_o he_o leave_v to_o his_o son_n titus_n to_o subdue_v and_o himself_o return_v to_o rome_n titus_n besiege_v it_o at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o passeover_n when_o the_o city_n be_v most_o full_a of_o people_n who_o be_v terrify_v by_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o roman_a without_o and_o the_o seditious_a within_o the_o city_n be_v bring_v to_o great_a misery_n by_o famine_n and_o contagion_n of_o the_o dead_a want_a burial_n woman_n be_v force_v to_o eat_v their_o child_n at_o last_o the_o city_n be_v take_v and_o the_o temple_n ruin_v the_o people_n some_o crucify_a other_o rip_v up_o in_o hope_n to_o find_v gold_n in_o their_o belly_n other_o sell_v as_o slave_n for_o thirty_o a_o penny_n as_o they_o value_v christ_n but_o at_o thirty_o penny_n other_o carry_v captive_a and_o devour_v by_o wild_a beast_n at_o the_o triumph_n of_o vespasian_n thus_o god_n reward_v they_o that_o regard_v not_o his_o son_n so_o that_o destruction_n come_v on_o they_o to_o the_o uttermost_a for_o since_o that_o time_n they_o never_o have_v the_o face_n of_o a_o church_n nor_o state_n but_o be_v scatter_v and_o hate_v of_o all_o nation_n and_o in_o token_n that_o their_o religion_n shall_v not_o rise_v again_o their_o temple_n can_v never_o be_v rebuilt_a though_o much_o endeavour_v no_o
act_n 2.46_o that_o be_v in_o their_o private_a oratory_n or_o upper_a room_n set_v apart_o for_o holy_a occasion_n of_o which_o there_o be_v no_o use_n when_o church_n be_v build_v except_o for_o devotion_n of_o the_o private_a family_n another_o meeting_n you_o find_v act_n 4.23_o where_o god_n shake_v the_o place_n where_o they_o be_v assemble_v and_o they_o be_v all_o fill_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n another_o meeting_n you_o find_v act_v 6.2_o about_o choose_v the_o seven_o deacon_n of_o who_o stephen_n be_v one_o who_o be_v the_o first_o martyr_n that_o suffer_v death_n for_o christ_n act_v 7.58_o then_o begin_v persecution_n to_o wax_v hot_a by_o reason_n of_o saul_n be_v too_o zealous_a for_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n act_v 8.4_o and_o so_o the_o church_n be_v scatter_v but_o he_o be_v convert_v act_v 9_o then_o have_v the_o church_n rest_n and_o multiply_v exceed_o ver_fw-la 31._o and_o spread_v very_o far_o and_o at_o antioch_n they_o be_v first_o call_v christian_n act_n 11.26_o then_o herod_n agrippa_n to_o curry_v favour_n with_o the_o jew_n act_n 12.2_o kill_v james_n and_o imprison_v peter_n but_o god_n smite_v he_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o his_o vain_a glory_n act_v 12.23_o the_o next_o special_a meeting_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v act_n 15.16_o the_o first_o council_n that_o ever_o be_v who_o determine_v the_o great_a question_n of_o circumcision_n negative_o that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v impose_v on_o the_o gentile_n other_o meeting_n there_o be_v in_o divers_a place_n according_a as_o the_o church_n increase_v and_o be_v transplant_v in_o divers_a region_n as_o act_n 20.7_o at_o troas_n mathe._n but_o have_v they_o any_o public_a meeting_n place_v call_v church_n in_o those_o time_n phila._n the_o first_o they_o have_v be_v those_o oratory_n which_v the_o jew_n have_v on_o top_n of_o their_o house_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d call_v the_o upper_a room_n which_o though_o the_o roman_n call_v caenaculum_fw-la or_o a_o banquet_a room_n because_o it_o be_v like_o their_o feast_a room_n on_o the_o top_n of_o their_o house_n yet_o neither_o the_o jew_n nor_o christian_n use_v it_o but_o in_o religious_a devotion_n and_o therefore_o where_o christ_n eat_v the_o passeover_n and_o celebrate_v his_o last_o supper_n be_v hold_v a_o place_n sacred_a though_o appertain_v to_o some_o private_a house_n of_o some_o of_o the_o disciple_n in_o this_o place_n some_o say_v that_o christ_n appear_v to_o his_o disciple_n on_o the_o day_n of_o his_o resurrection_n 3._o nicepho_n &_o bed_n de_fw-fr locis_fw-la sanct._n to_o 3._o c._n 3._o and_o on_o the_o eight_o day_n after_o to_o thomas_n with_o the_o rest_n and_o that_o here_o james_n be_v make_v bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n by_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o seven_o deacon_n elect_v and_o the_o first_o council_n hold_v 16._o cyr._n hieros_n cat_n 16._o act_v 15._o and_o saint_n cyril_n call_v it_o the_o upper_a church_n of_o the_o apostle_n where_o the_o holy_a ghost_n descend_v also_o upon_o they_o act_v 2._o and_o it_o may_v possible_o be_v the_o place_n prophesy_v of_o as_o be_v near_o to_o mount_v zion_n psalm_n 50.2_o out_o of_o zion_n god_n appear_v in_o perfect_a beauty_n in_o which_o psalm_n the_o spirit_n also_o seem_v to_o refuse_v carnal_a facrifice_n which_o be_v gospel-like_a doctrine_n also_o it_o be_v prophesy_v that_o out_o of_o zion_n shall_v go_v forth_o the_o law_n and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n out_o of_o jerusalem_n to_o which_o many_o people_n shall_v flock_v and_o so_o they_o do_v act_v 2._o and_o thus_o his_o foundation_n be_v lay_v in_o the_o holy_a mountain_n and_o he_o have_v show_v that_o he_o love_v the_o gate_n of_o zion_n more_o than_o all_o the_o dwelling_n of_o jacob_n 27._o vide_fw-la high_a in_o epitap_n paulae_fw-la epi._n 27._o because_o he_o i._n christ_n be_v there_o produce_v by_o the_o gospel_n promulgation_n which_o never_o come_v from_o the_o temple_n though_o divulge_v from_o a_o place_n near_o to_o zion_n which_o place_n be_v enclose_v afterward_o if_o we_o may_v believe_v antiquity_n with_o a_o fair_a church_n call_v the_o church_n of_o zion_n in_o process_n of_o time_n as_o the_o church_n christian_n increase_v no_o doubt_n they_o build_v place_n of_o recess_n for_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n as_o well_o as_o the_o jew_n have_v synagogue_n who_o religion_n be_v estrange_v as_o much_o from_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n as_o the_o christian_n be_v and_o in_o these_o place_n they_o do_v ordinary_o assemble_v to_o perform_v divine_a duty_n unless_o they_o be_v hinder_v by_o necessity_n mathe._n i_o pray_v give_v i_o some_o instance_n of_o these_o phila._n we_o read_v that_o as_o at_o first_o they_o have_v their_o upper_a room_n for_o oratory_n so_o afterward_o they_o have_v place_n of_o worship_n build_v in_o field_n 〈◊〉_d euseb_n eccle_n hist_o lib._n 2._o c._n 16._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d where_o they_o hear_v the_o scripture_n interpret_v and_o have_v several_a class_n for_o man_n and_o woman_n and_o sing_v psalm_n and_o have_v distinction_n of_o bishop_n and_o deacon_n we_o see_v also_o in_o paul_n epistle_n that_o he_o salute_v some_o with_o their_o household_n only_o as_o aristobulus_n and_o narcissus_n assyncritus_n 4._o rom._n 16._o oecume_v in_o in_o rom._n 16._o and_o col._n 4._o and_o phlegon_n but_o other_o he_o salute_v with_o the_o church_n at_o their_o house_n i._o all_o those_o that_o there_o common_o assemble_v so_o he_o salute_v nymphas_n col._n 4.15_o and_o philemon_n and_o aquila_n and_o priscilla_n rom._n 16._o which_o show_v their_o house_n or_o part_n of_o they_o dedicate_v to_o pious_a use_n in_o common_a so_o theophilus_n to_o who_o st_n luke_n dedicate_v his_o gospel_n 10._o hiero._n in_o ep_v 2._o ad_fw-la galat._n clem._n in_o recog_n lib._n 10._o and_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v dedicate_v his_o house_n at_o antioch_n to_o this_o purpose_n this_o be_v about_o thirty_o eight_o year_n after_o christ_n and_o eusebius_n report_v that_o st_n mark_n have_v divers_a church_n in_o alexandria_n in_o his_o history_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 16._o so_o st_o paul_n at_o corinth_n as_o we_o may_v collect_v from_o 1_o cor._n 11.22_o say_n have_v you_o not_o house_n to_o eat_v and_o drink_v in_o or_o do_v you_o despise_v the_o church_n of_o god_n so_o joseph_n of_o arimathea_n and_o his_o colony_n of_o christian_n build_v the_o church_n of_o glassenbury_n in_o england_n angli_fw-la hist_o angli_fw-la which_o be_v burn_v be_v build_v again_o by_o king_n henry_n the_o second_o his_o letter_n patent_n so_o crescens_n cause_v a_o church_n to_o be_v build_v at_o vienna_n so_o in_o 79._o 4._o eus_n l._n 3._o c._n 4._o there_o be_v a_o great_a church_n build_v at_o ephesus_n by_o st_n john_n say_v eusebius_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 20._o and_o many_o be_v build_v also_o in_o rome_n by_o the_o apostle_n mean_n 25_o euseb_n l._n 2._o c._n 25_o and_o sure_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o dedicate_a place_n to_o holy_a worship_n be_v because_o christian_n be_v teach_v by_o scripture_n that_o the_o majesty_n of_o god_n be_v most_o sacred_a and_o incommunicable_a so_o those_o thing_n by_o which_o they_o worship_v shall_v not_o be_v make_v common_a and_o indeed_o therefore_o christian_n be_v well_o admonish_v by_o a_o ancient_a holy_a writer_n corinth_n clem._n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la corinth_n that_o we_o ought_v to_o do_v all_o thing_n as_o god_n have_v express_v they_o to_o be_v do_v in_o regard_n both_o of_o time_n when_o and_o person_n whereby_o and_o place_n wherein_o that_o so_o we_o may_v be_v accept_v of_o he_o all_o these_o we_o find_v in_o the_o first_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n mathe._n i_o pray_v go_v on_o and_o give_v i_o a_o further_a light_n phila._n we_o find_v ignatius_n reprove_v trajan_n in_o a_o church_n 19_o lib._n 3._o cap._n 19_o as_o nicephorus_n report_v and_o 117._o the_o emperor_n adrian_n command_v christian_a church_n to_o be_v build_v adri._n dion_n in_o adri._n and_o forbid_v to_o place_v the_o image_n of_o the_o roman_a god_n therein_o and_o ignatius_n write_v to_o the_o magnesian_o philad_n vid._n epist_n ad_fw-la ad_fw-la philad_n charge_v they_o to_o meet_v in_o one_o place_n to_o use_v one_o common_a prayer_n with_o one_o heart_n as_o come_v to_o one_o temple_n of_o god_n one_o altar_n and_o one_o christ_n so_o we_o find_v polycarpus_n receive_v the_o communion_n in_o a_o church_n at_o rome_n in_o the_o year_n 169._o and_o theophylus_fw-la antiochenus_fw-la 25._o eus_n l._n 5._o c._n 25._o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o autolycum_n say_v that_o as_o the_o sea_n have_v land_n that_o be_v fruitful_a so_o the_o world_n have_v synagogue_n call_v church_n wherein_o truth_n be_v preserve_v whereby_o man_n may_v be_v save_v and_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n distinguish_v the_o church_n
four_o succeed_v pope_n joan_n or_o john_n the_o eight_o bear_v in_o mentz_n go_v to_o athens_n in_o man_n apparel_n come_v to_o rome_n and_o be_v to_o the_o popedom_n advance_v prove_v with_o child_n deliver_v as_o she_o be_v go_v to_o the_o church_n of_o lateran_n of_o who_o anastasius_n a_o chronologer_n who_o live_v about_o this_o time_n make_v no_o mention_n for_o shame_n of_o the_o fact_n but_o pass_v it_o benedict_n the_o three_o honour_v much_o the_o funeral_n of_o the_o clergy_n with_o his_o own_o presence_n and_o desire_v the_o bishop_n may_v by_o the_o whole_a clergy_n nicolaus_n the_o first_o succeed_v he_o who_o suffer_v the_o emperor_n ludovicus_n the_o second_o to_o alight_v and_o lead_v his_o horse_n by_o the_o bridle_n a_o full_a mile_n he_o permit_v divorce_n without_o consent_n of_o party_n as_o the_o anabaptist_n do_v and_z or_o dain_v that_o the_o clergy_n shall_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o civil_a magistrate_n seat_n of_o judicature_n and_o that_o none_o shall_v receive_v the_o sacrament_n from_o a_o marry_a clergy_n man_n and_o that_o the_o emperor_n shall_v not_o be_v present_a at_o ecclesiastical_a meeting_n unless_o some_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v to_o be_v handle_v and_o the_o common_a service_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v in_o latin_a in_o all_o church_n but_o dispense_v with_o sclavonia_n and_o polonia_n he_o add_v to_o the_o liturgy_n the_o hymn_n of_o glory_n be_v to_o god_n on_o high_a hadrian_n the_o second_o succeed_v who_o proud_o command_v the_o king_n of_o france_n carolus_n calvus_n to_o let_v hircmanus_n bishop_n of_o laudunum_n to_o appeal_v to_o rome_n after_o his_o condemnation_n by_o a_o council_n in_o france_n but_o he_o refuse_v however_o john_n the_o nine_o his_o successor_n crown_v he_o emperor_n and_o after_o he_o balbus_n and_o then_o crassus_n all_o three_o name_v charles_n hadrian_n the_o three_o ordain_v that_o the_o clergy_n and_o people_n of_o rome_n shall_v choose_v their_o pope_n without_o attendance_n upon_o the_o emperor_n allowance_n or_o leave_n and_o that_o after_o the_o death_n of_o carolus_n crassus_n who_o die_v without_o succession_n that_o the_o imperial_a title_n and_o government_n of_o italy_n shall_v belong_v to_o a_o italian_a prince_n which_o breed_v great_a contention_n and_o debate_n among_o the_o prince_n and_o much_o trouble_n to_o the_o chair_n of_o rome_n every_o prince_n strive_v to_o advance_v he_o to_o it_o that_o be_v most_o friend_n to_o himself_o stephanus_n the_o five_o follow_v who_o ordain_v that_o whatsoever_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n appoint_v be_v to_o be_v perpetual_o observe_v pormosus_fw-la succeed_v he_o who_o crown_v the_o emperor_n arnulphus_n and_o then_o boniface_n the_o sixth_o be_v next_o then_o stephanus_n the_o sixth_o who_o offer_v great_a violence_n to_o the_o dead_a body_n of_o formosus_fw-la cut_v off_o his_o finger_n and_o disannul_v his_o ordination_n yea_o and_o his_o crown_v the_o emperor_n arnulphus_n and_o set_v up_o albertus_n marquesse_n of_o tuscia_n in_o his_o stead_n now_o antichrist_n appear_v more_o than_o ever_o before_o by_o put_v down_o and_o set_v up_o emperor_n romanus_n succeed_v he_o and_o nul_v the_o decree_n of_o stephanus_n theodorus_n succeed_v he_o and_o allow_v they_o again_o john_n the_o ten_o nul_v the_o decree_n of_o stephanus_n the_o sixth_o and_o allow_v they_o of_o formosus_fw-la how_o be_v these_o man_n lead_v infallible_o by_o the_o spirit_n sergius_n the_o three_o who_o again_o take_v up_o the_o body_n of_o formosus_fw-la after_o eight_o year_n and_o behead_v it_o he_o love_v marozia_n and_o on_o she_o beget_v a_o son_n who_o be_v afterward_o make_v pope_n and_o call_v john_n the_o twelve_o pope_n john_n the_o thirteen_o commit_v adultery_n be_v slay_v by_o the_o woman_n husband_n but_o first_o depose_v by_o a_o council_n call_v by_o otho_n the_o first_o emperor_n leo_fw-la the_o eight_o succeed_v who_o find_v and_o be_v weary_a of_o the_o sedition_n and_o insolence_n of_o the_o roman_a people_n resign_v the_o choose_n of_o pope_n to_o the_o emperor_n john_n the_o fourteen_o succeed_v who_o first_o bring_v in_o baptise_v of_o bell_n and_o he_o call_v the_o great_a bell_n of_o the_o church_n of_o lateran_n by_o his_o own_o name_n john_n then_o gregory_n the_o five_o who_o after_o much_o trouble_n by_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o emperor_n o_o ho_o the_o three_o appoint_v the_o seven_o elector_n of_o the_o empire_n appoint_v make_v a_o constitution_n of_o seven_o elector_n to_o choose_v the_o emperor_n for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v which_o continue_v still_o namely_o the_o bishop_n of_o mentz_n colen_n and_o tryer_n the_o count_n palatine_n the_o duke_n of_o saxony_n and_o the_o marquesse_n of_o brandenburg_n and_o in_o case_n of_o difference_n the_o king_n of_o bohemia_n next_o follow_v sylvester_n the_o second_o platina_n platina_n a_o great_a scholar_n but_o a_o magician_n he_o inquire_v of_o the_o devil_n how_o long_o he_o shall_v live_v pope_n he_o do_v answer_v he_o till_o he_o say_v mass_n at_o jerusalem_n which_o fall_v out_o at_o a_o chapel_n so_o call_v at_o rome_n where_o this_o pope_n say_v mass_n in_o lent_n be_v strike_v with_o a_o fever_n of_o which_o he_o die_v mathe._n but_o yet_o we_o hear_v of_o no_o great_a persecution_n phila._n true_o pope_n why_o no_o great_a persecution_n yet_o by_o the_o pope_n because_o yet_o the_o church_n be_v of_o one_o language_n and_o none_o stand_v up_o against_o the_o corrupt_a tenet_n of_o rome_n mathe._n why_o do_v you_o then_o reckon_v up_o this_o bedroll_n of_o pope_n phila._n because_o you_o may_v know_v how_o and_o by_o who_o corruption_n creep_v in_o which_o corruption_n be_v contradict_v by_o some_o who_o god_n enlighten_v then_o begin_v persecution_n mathe._n i_o pray_v now_o go_v on_o phila._n i_o have_v not_o nor_o shall_v trouble_v you_o with_o all_o of_o they_o but_o with_o some_o who_o have_v act_v thing_n very_o remarkable_a therefore_o after_o sylvester_n the_o second_o and_o divers_a other_o pope_n leo_n the_o nine_o call_v a_o council_n against_o berengarius_fw-la who_o deny_v transubstantiation_n nicolaus_n the_o second_o follow_v who_o force_v by_o a_o council_n berengarius_fw-la to_o recant_v who_o do_v yet_o afterward_o write_v against_o transubstantiation_n he_o be_v poison_v as_o other_o pope_n before_o he_o alexander_n the_o second_o follow_v who_o deny_v to_o rule_v as_o pope_n without_o the_o emperor_n consent_n for_o which_o he_o be_v beat_v in_o a_o chamber_n by_o hildebrand_n in_o his_o pontificial_o and_o cast_v into_o prison_n where_o he_o die_v hildebrand_n call_v gregorius_n the_o seven_o succeed_v he_o call_v the_o marrig●e_n of_o priest_n the_o heresy_n of_o the_o nicolaitan_n and_o receive_v ecclesiastical_a preferment_n and_o office_n from_o lay_v man_n though_o prince_n simony_n england_n about_o this_o time_n william_n the_o conqueror_n come_v into_o england_n this_o be_v bring_v to_o pass_v by_o the_o thunder_n of_o excommunication_n which_o make_v the_o emperor_n henry_n the_o four_o travel_n to_o rome_n in_o the_o hard_a winter_n to_o get_v absolution_n from_o the_o pope_n curse_n vrbanus_n the_o second_o excite_a prince_n to_o war_n against_o the_o turk_n who_o have_v get_v jerusalem_n this_o he_o do_v in_o a_o council_n hold_v at_o cleremount_n in_o france_n and_o by_o divers_a prince_n recover_v it_o for_o a_o while_n but_o this_o war_n make_v christian_a prince_n so_o weak_a both_o in_o power_n and_o purse_n that_o the_o pope_n more_o easy_o bring_v they_o all_o under_o his_o girdle_n paschalis_n the_o second_o succeed_v he_o who_o at_o the_o church_n of_o lateran_n have_v a_o sceptre_n put_v into_o his_o hand_n and_o gird_v with_o a_o girdle_n have_v seven_o seal_n and_o key_n hang_v at_o it_o signify_v his_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v shut_v and_o open_v seal_v and_o resign_v and_o judge_v he_o excommunicate_v henry_n the_o four_o the_o emperor_n and_o excite_v his_o son_n henry_n the_o five_o against_o he_o he_o take_v up_o the_o corpse_n of_o henry_n the_o four_o and_o keep_v it_o above_o ground_n five_o year_n well_o do_v the_o bishop_n of_o florence_n write_v in_o this_o pope_n time_n that_o antichrist_n be_v bear_v and_o manifest_v to_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v silence_v by_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n which_o this_o pope_n call_v and_o his_o book_n burn_v you_o see_v how_o persecution_n begin_v now_o upon_o emperor_n and_o bishop_n this_o pope_n will_v not_o crown_v henry_n the_o five_o emperor_n unless_o he_o will_v give_v over_o his_o right_n of_o investment_n of_o bishop_n by_o the_o staff_n and_o ring_n but_o the_o emperor_n lay_v hold_v of_o he_o and_o his_o cardinal_n and_o compel_v he_o to_o do_v it_o and_o the_o pope_n solemn_o divide_v the_o holy_a host_n between_o he_o and_o the_o emperor_n and_o wish_v that_o he_o may_v be_v divide_v from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o
fulfil_v it_o mat._n 5.17_o or_o why_o do_v the_o apostle_n say_v that_o he_o do_v not_o by_o his_o preach_v up_o faith_n to_o justify_v a_o man_n 3.31_o rom._n 3.31_o make_v void_a the_o law_n but_o establish_v it_o sure_o by_o accept_v it_o for_o a_o rule_n of_o a_o holy_a life_n though_o not_o either_o to_o justify_v or_o condemn_v we_o but_o to_o walk_v according_a to_o it_o out_o of_o love_n to_o righteousness_n rom._n 7.22_o again_o 18._o they_o say_v a_o man_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o pray_v except_o the_o spirit_n move_v he_o yet_o paul_n say_v pray_v continual_o and_o peter_n bid_v we_o be_v sober_a and_o watch_v to_o prayer_n as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o duty_n and_o if_o we_o look_v upon_o it_o as_o a_o duty_n than_o we_o be_v to_o do_v it_o without_o expect_v far_o incitation_n by_o immediate_a infusion_n so_o they_o say_v that_o the_o spirit_n work_v in_o hypocrite_n by_o gift_n and_o grace_n but_o in_o god_n child_n immediate_o but_o then_o they_o need_v not_o take_v heed_n it_o seem_v to_o the_o sure_a word_n of_o prophecy_n as_o say_v st_n peter_n which_o he_o prefer_v for_o the_o church_n establishment_n before_o that_o of_o revelation_n call_v it_o a_o more_o sure_a word_n of_o prophecy_n 19_o 2_o pet._n 18_o 19_o so_o they_o pretend_v that_o a_o minister_n that_o have_v not_o this_o new_a light_n can_v edify_v they_o that_o have_v it_o i_o wonder_v then_o how_o the_o apostle_n edify_v the_o church_n who_o have_v not_o this_o new_a light_n or_o dark_a lantern_n rather_o of_o vain_a opinion_n for_o i_o have_v show_v you_o that_o they_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n or_o if_o their_o light_n be_v the_o most_o save_a grace_n of_o god_n yet_o a_o man_n that_o have_v it_o not_o may_v edify_v other_o by_o preach_v salvation_n to_o other_o though_o himself_o be_v a_o castaway_n so_o they_o say_v no_o christian_n ought_v to_o be_v press_v to_o the_o duty_n of_o holiness_n this_o be_v to_o make_v the_o world_n believe_v that_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o preach_v 4.2_o 2_o tim._n 4.2_o yet_o st_n paul_n bid_v timothy_n to_o preach_v in_o season_n and_o out_o of_o season_n and_o titus_n to_o rebuke_v and_o exhort_v with_o all_o authority_n tit._n 2.15_o mathe._n what_o other_o sect_n trouble_v the_o protestant_a church_n phila._n the_o arminian_o revive_v the_o heresy_n of_o pelagius_n britto_n who_o live_v in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o emperor_n arcadius_n and_o honorius_n who_o hold_v that_o man_n by_o nature_n may_v fulfil_v the_o whole_a law_n of_o god_n and_o deny_v original_a sin_n and_o say_v that_o man_n be_v sinner_n by_o imitation_n only_o of_o adam_n not_o by_o carnal_a propagation_n contrary_a to_o psal_n 51._o and_o that_o child_n have_v no_o need_n of_o baptism_n for_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o that_o the_o godly_a man_n in_o scripture_n that_o confess_v their_o sin_n do_v it_o for_o example_n sake_n rather_o than_o out_o of_o guiltiness_n who_o st_n augustine_n sufficient_o confute_v and_o their_o tenet_n be_v condemn_v by_o the_o five_o council_n of_o carthage_n in_o the_o year_n 419._o as_o heretical_a also_o by_o the_o milevitane_a council_n in_o numidia_n the_o patron_n of_o the_o arminian_o be_v one_o jacobus_n arminius_n professor_n of_o divinity_n at_o leyden_n in_o the_o low_a country_n in_o the_o year_n 1605._o his_o follower_n be_v call_v remonstrant_n now_o as_o pelagius_n be_v drive_v from_o rome_n come_v into_o england_n and_o infect_v it_o with_o his_o error_n though_o by_o the_o travel_n of_o germanus_n altisidorensis_fw-la and_o palladius_n send_v hither_o by_o caelestinus_n bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o land_n be_v free_v from_o his_o poison_n so_o arminius_n infect_v england_n by_o his_o writing_n and_o his_o wellwisher_n such_o as_o conradus_n vorstius_n but_o be_v reasonable_o well_o stop_v by_o the_o diligence_n of_o king_n james_n in_o send_v over_o certain_a learned_a and_o grave_a divine_n to_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n yet_o nevertheless_o these_o error_n have_v find_v many_o favourer_n in_o england_n though_o they_o be_v against_o scripture_n and_o the_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o concern_v prepestination_n they_o deny_v it_o by_o say_v that_o it_o be_v only_o the_o will_n of_o god_n to_o save_v they_o that_o believe_v and_o persevere_v and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o decree_n of_o election_n contrary_a to_o act_n 13.48_o as_o many_o as_o be_v ordain_v to_o eternal_a life_n believe_v and_o eph._n 1.4_o he_o have_v choose_v we_o to_o salvation_n before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n so_o ro._n 8.30_o who_o he_o have_v predestinate_v they_o he_o have_v also_o call_v so_o they_o say_v election_n be_v of_o faith_n not_o of_o person_n but_o paul_n say_v god_n have_v call_v we_o according_a to_o his_o purpose_n in_o christ_n before_o the_o world_n 4._o that_o election_n of_o we_o to_o faith_n presuppose_v in_o we_o honesty_n and_o humility_n and_o a_o disposition_n to_o eternal_a life_n whereas_o it_o be_v election_n that_o cause_v such_o virtue_n and_o not_o they_o election_n 4._o ephes_n 2.3_o 4._o for_o by_o nature_n we_o be_v only_o give_v to_o fulfil_v the_o will_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o be_v by_o nature_n the_o child_n of_o wrath_n as_o well_o as_o other_o but_o god_n who_o be_v rich_a in_o mercy_n 9.11_o rom._n 9.11_o have_v quicken_v we_o etc._n etc._n for_o election_n be_v not_o of_o work_n but_o of_o he_o that_o call_v for_o he_o love_v we_o first_o 1_o john_n 4.10_o so_o 5._o they_o say_v election_n be_v not_o unchangeable_a but_o a_o man_n may_v withstand_v god_n decree_n 24.24_o mat._n 24.24_o but_o christ_n say_v the_o elect_a can_v be_v seduce_v for_o christ_n lose_v not_o those_o that_o be_v give_v to_o he_o john_n 6.39_o and_o therefore_o the_o chain_n hold_v from_o election_n to_o glorification_n rom._n 8.30_o which_o certain_o be_v the_o joy_n of_o god_n people_n that_o their_o name_n be_v write_v in_o heaven_n luke_n 10.20_o and_o therefore_o none_o can_v charge_v they_o nor_o condemn_v they_o rom._n 8.33_o so_o 6._o they_o make_v election_n general_a which_o be_v a_o contradiction_n 9.18_o rom._n 9.18_o god_n have_v mercy_n on_o who_o he_o will_n and_o to_o some_o it_o be_v give_v to_o know_v the_o mystery_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n not_o to_o other_o mat._n 13.11_o to_o babe_n and_o not_o to_o the_o worldly_a wise_a mat._n 11.15_o 16._o mathe._n what_o far_a error_n hold_v these_o arminian_o phila._n they_o say_v that_o the_o cause_n why_o god_n send_v his_o gospel_n to_o one_o people_n and_o not_o to_o another_o be_v not_o only_a god_n good_a pleasure_n but_o because_o one_o nation_n be_v more_o worthy_a than_o another_o 15_o deu._n 10.14_o 15_o yet_o moses_n tell_v israel_n that_o god_n choose_v their_o father_n out_o of_o mere_a love_n and_o christ_n say_v that_o chorazin_n and_o bethsaida_n be_v a_o worse_a people_n than_o those_o of_o tyre_n and_o zidon_n 11.21_o mat._n 11.21_o so_o they_o say_v that_o god_n ordain_v christ_n to_o die_v without_o any_o certain_a determination_n of_o save_v any_o particular_a man_n or_o people_n 53.10_o isa_n 53.10_o yet_o isaiah_n say_v that_o when_o he_o shall_v make_v his_o soul_n a_o offering_n for_o sin_n that_o he_o shall_v see_v his_o seed_n and_o christ_n say_v i_o know_v my_o sheep_n and_o i_o lay_v down_o my_o life_n for_o my_o sheep_n so_o they_o teach_v that_o god_n do_v not_o intend_v to_o establish_v a_o new_a covenant_n of_o grace_n with_o man_n by_o christ_n blood_n but_o to_o make_v any_o covenant_n with_o man_n whatsoever_o either_o of_o work_n or_o grace_n but_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o surety_n of_o a_o better_a estament_n than_o be_v before_o viz._n of_o work_n heb._n 7.22_o whereby_o we_o be_v justify_v free_o by_o his_o grace_n through_o the_o redemption_n of_o christ_n so_o they_o say_v that_o all_o be_v receive_v into_o grace_n and_o favour_n alike_o in_o the_o gospel-covenant_n and_o none_o shall_v be_v condemn_v for_o original_a sin_n and_o yet_o christ_n say_v i_o pray_v not_o for_o the_o world_n but_o for_o those_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o out_o of_o the_o world_n they_o say_v also_o that_o god_n confer_v equal_o the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n death_n to_o man_n but_o the_o cause_n why_o some_o man_n have_v they_o and_o not_o other_o be_v by_o reason_n of_o their_o free_a will_n choose_v it_o and_o not_o of_o god_n singular_a gift_n of_o mercy_n effectual_o work_v thereunto_o yet_o st_n paul_n say_v it_o be_v not_o in_o he_o that_o will_v or_o run_v but_o in_o god_n that_o show_v mercy_n so_o they_o say_v christ_n die_v not_o for_o those_o who_o god_n love_v and_o choose_v to_o eternal_a life_n because_o they_o have_v no_o need_n of_o it_o but_o they_o perceive_v not_o that_o they_o be_v choose_v
every_o man_n their_o fellow_n the_o book_n that_o some_o of_o their_o own_o have_v write_v show_v enough_o of_o their_o simplicity_n mathe._n be_v we_o not_o trouble_v with_o some_o of_o the_o old_a pelagian_o phila._n there_o have_v be_v some_o long_a ago_o that_o hold_v some_o of_o the_o opinion_n of_o old_a pelagius_n britto_n the_o welsh_a man_n alias_z morgan_z haeret._n con_v in_o the_o five_o council_n of_o carthage_n and_o in_o other_o pontanus_n cat._n haeret._n who_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n the_o young_a about_o the_o year_n 416._o his_o follower_n of_o latter_a time_n be_v reckon_v to_o hold_v many_o error_n as_o 1._o that_o adam_n shall_v have_v die_v by_o the_o course_n of_o nature_n though_o he_o have_v not_o sin_v yet_o we_o find_v that_o god_n join_v death_n to_o disobedience_n gen._n 2.17_o so_o 2._o they_o say_v adam_n sin_n only_o hurt_v himself_o not_o his_o posterity_n yet_o paul_n say_v otherwise_o rom._n 5.12_o by_o one_o man_n sin_n enter_v and_o death_n pass_v upon_o all_o man_n because_o all_o man_n do_v partake_v of_o that_o one_o sin_n yea_o even_o those_o that_o never_o sin_v as_o adam_n do_v ver_fw-la 14._o i._n actuallie_o but_o not_o originallie_o as_o child_n have_v no_o sin_n but_o that_o and_o yet_o die_v beza_n august_n beza_n but_o therefore_o 3._o these_o pelagian_o deny_v original_a sin_n in_o child_n but_o how_o then_o say_v david_n in_o sin_n my_o mother_n conceive_v i_o psal_n 51._o and_o therefore_o original_a sin_n be_v propagate_v by_o generation_n 4._o they_o say_v the_o child_n of_o the_o faithful_a though_o not_o baptize_v be_v save_v and_o they_o shall_v enjoy_v everlasting_a life_n but_o not_o in_o heaven_n but_o christ_n say_v joh._n 3._o that_o those_o which_o belong_v to_o god_n kingdom_n must_v be_v baptize_v with_o water_n nor_o do_v the_o scripture_n set_v forth_o to_o we_o any_o three_o place_n between_o heaven_n and_o hell_n 5._o they_o say_v that_o man_n be_v bear_v in_o adam_n perfection_n stature_n and_o age_n except_v yet_o sure_o they_o be_v not_o bear_v in_o such_o integrity_n as_o adam_n be_v make_v for_o then_o all_o will_v be_v equal_o wise_a and_o good_a when_o they_o come_v to_o age_n 6._o they_o say_v man_n have_v free_a will_n by_o which_o they_o be_v enable_v to_o do_v well_o without_o god_n grace_n yet_o say_v paul_n not_o i_o but_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o i_o 7._o god_n grace_n they_o say_v be_v obtain_v by_o the_o merit_n of_o our_o work_n yet_o paul_n say_v that_o they_o that_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n can_v please_v god_n and_o therefore_o by_o natural_a work_n they_o can_v merit_v grace_n 8._o they_o say_v that_o the_o word_n grace_n in_o scripture_n do_v not_o signify_v remission_n of_o sin_n or_o donation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o this_o be_v find_v otherwise_o for_o as_o there_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n credimus_fw-la fides_n quam_fw-la credimus_fw-la &_o fides_fw-la quâ_fw-la credimus_fw-la which_o be_v preach_v rom._n 10.8_o and_o the_o virtue_n of_o faith_n by_o which_o we_o believe_v it_o and_o be_v thereby_o justify_v rom._n 5.1_o so_o the_o promulgation_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o common_a grace_n afford_v to_o many_o tit._n 2.11_o teach_v we_o to_o deny_v ungodliness_n and_o next_o by_o it_o be_v beget_v save_v grace_n 1_o tim._n 1.14_o the_o grace_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v exceed_v abundant_a in_o i_o with_o faith_n and_o love_n which_o be_v in_o jesus_n christ_n 9_o they_o say_v that_o faith_n be_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o history_n not_o any_o special_a work_n in_o we_o but_o then_o the_o faith_n of_o devil_n and_o good_a christian_n be_v both_o alike_o jam._n 2.19.10_o they_o say_v the_o law_n be_v not_o impossible_a for_o a_o man_n to_o keep_v and_o it_o be_v satisfy_v by_o the_o external_a obedience_n why_o then_o do_v paul_n say_v that_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n no_o man_n can_v be_v justify_v rom._n 3.20_o yet_o he_o that_o can_v fulfil_v it_o may_v be_v justify_v by_o it_o and_o have_v no_o need_n of_o christ_n gal._n 3.12_o so_o 11._o they_o say_v that_o to_o pray_v for_o the_o conversion_n of_o sinner_n or_o for_o the_o saint_n perseverance_n be_v vain_a because_o it_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o their_o own_o free_a will_n but_o sure_o the_o will_n of_o man_n have_v not_o power_n to_o revive_v he_o though_o he_o have_v power_n to_o kill_v himself_o and_o therefore_o prayer_n be_v very_o fit_a to_o be_v use_v for_o people_n unconvert_v and_o also_o for_o the_o godly_a because_o of_o their_o frailty_n therefore_o christ_n bid_v we_o pray_v for_o our_o enemy_n and_o paul_n bow_v his_o knee_n daily_a for_o the_o ephesian_n c._n 3.16_o so_o 12._o they_o slight_a the_o doctrine_n of_o predestination_n which_o be_v applaud_v by_o st_n paul_n 8._o rom._n 8._o and_o comfortable_a to_o god_n people_n many_o other_o error_n they_o hold_v not_o worth_a relate_n mathe._n but_o i_o hear_v of_o some_o call_v independent_o and_o leveller_n i_o will_v willing_o know_v what_o they_o be_v phila._n independent_n be_v those_o that_o set_v up_o a_o congregationall_a government_n which_o shall_v depend_v upon_o no_o other_o church_n synod_n nor_o classis_fw-la and_o though_o they_o be_v against_o the_o bishop_n yet_o they_o will_v have_v in_o every_o church_n bishop-independants_a and_o so_o many_o parish_n so_o many_o prelacy_n because_o they_o be_v independent_a upon_o any_o other_o they_o be_v breed_v from_o separatist_n and_o brownist_n the_o first_o of_o they_o that_o i_o can_v hear_v of_o be_v one_o mr_n robinson_n who_o leave_v norwich_n turn_v a_o rigid_a brownist_n at_o leyden_n he_o die_v many_o of_o his_o follower_n go_v from_o thence_o to_o new_a england_n and_o plant_v at_o plymoth_n there_o and_o spread_v their_o error_n by_o discourse_n and_o into_o old_a england_n by_o letter_n where_o they_o endeavour_v to_o set_v church_n against_o church_n and_o conventicle_n against_o our_o church_n which_o they_o call_v steeple-house_n which_o be_v at_o first_o set_v up_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o his_o service_n though_o abuse_v by_o the_o papist_n to_o superstition_n yet_o be_v they_o never_o the_o worse_o when_o they_o be_v return_v to_o a_o right_a use_n for_o as_o there_o be_v no_o inherent_a righteousness_n in_o their_o wall_n so_o neither_o be_v inherent_a superstition_n in_o they_o it_o be_v true_a that_o jehosaphat_n take_v away_o the_o high_a place_n and_o grove_n because_o god_n have_v appoint_v and_o a_o place_n be_v consecrate_v for_o his_o service_n 17.6_o 2_o chro._n 17.6_o and_o such_o high_a place_n and_o grove_n be_v forbid_v but_o they_o just_a contrary_n to_o jehosaphat_n pull_v down_o the_o consecrate_a place_n and_o set_v up_o high_a place_n in_o chamber_n and_o meet_v in_o the_o grove_n and_o wood_n god_n give_v they_o a_o right_a understanding_n in_o the_o use_n of_o church_n beside_o this_o they_o set_v themselves_o to_o overthrow_v learning_n and_o to_o rob_v it_o of_o all_o maintenance_n and_o the_o minister_n of_o all_o due_n and_o yet_o ask_v wherein_o have_v we_o rob_v god_n mal._n 3.8_o where_o god_n answer_v they_o in_o tithe_n and_o offering_n which_o god_n think_v a_o fit_a way_n to_o maintain_v his_o priest_n and_o christ_n bid_v the_o leper_n go_v show_v himself_o to_o the_o priest_n and_o pay_v his_o offering_n mat._n 8.4_o and_o paul_n find_v it_o be_v equity_n that_o as_o they_o which_o do_v wait_v on_o the_o altar_n be_v partaker_n of_o the_o altar_n so_o that_o it_o be_v god_n ordinance_n that_o they_o that_o preach_v the_o gospel_n shall_v live_v on_o the_o gospel_n 1_o cor._n 9.13_o 14._o yet_o these_o like_a julian_n the_o apostate_n will_v rob_v the_o church_n of_o maintenance_n that_o there_o may_v be_v no_o ministry_n because_o they_o despise_v prophecy_n again_o they_o allow_v no_o set_a form_n of_o prayer_n no_o not_o christ_n form_n and_o yet_o they_o will_v say_v st_n paul_n namely_o the_o grace_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o love_n of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o the_o fellowship_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n etc._n etc._n yet_o it_o have_v ever_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o all_o true_a church_n jew_n and_o christian_n to_o have_v set_v form_n as_o well_o for_o the_o uniform_a consent_n of_o the_o people_n rom._n 15.6_o in_o prayer_n and_o in_o praise_n as_o also_o for_o the_o confine_n not_o of_o the_o spirit_n as_o they_o suppose_v but_o of_o their_o inconsiderate_a spirit_n to_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n and_o soberness_n yet_o there_o be_v always_o liberty_n enough_o to_o show_v the_o gift_n of_o prayer_n before_o and_o after_o sermon_n if_o man_n can_v use_v their_o liberty_n not_o as_o occasion_v to_o fleshly_a fantasy_n mathe._n
spirit_n of_o judgement_n and_o burn_a esa_n 4.4_o both_o to_o condemn_v ourselves_o and_o to_o consume_v our_o dross_n therefore_o it_o continual_o lu_v against_o the_o flesh_n and_o make_v our_o heart_n to_o rise_v against_o sin_n 3._o gal._n 3._o as_o it_o do_v against_o any_o thing_n we_o hate_v and_o if_o at_o any_o time_n we_o yield_v to_o the_o flesh_n this_o good_a spirit_n become_v like_o a_o voice_n behind_o call_v to_o we_o that_o we_o be_v out_o of_o the_o way_n esa_n 30.21_o by_o daily_o good_a motion_n and_o check_n of_o conscience_n and_o by_o baptise_v we_o with_o fire_n mat._n 3.11_o inflame_a our_o heart_n with_o a_o holy_a revenge_n upon_o sin_n and_o with_o a_o love_n to_o all_o goodness_n righteousness_n and_o truth_n then_o next_o he_o do_v infuse_v divine_a grace_n into_o the_o heart_n which_o be_v like_o so_o many_o letter_n commendatory_a of_o we_o to_o god_n as_o faith_n to_o believe_v above_o reason_n natural_a as_o abraham_n do_v rom._n 4.17_o and_o without_o any_o visible_a mean_n heb._n 11.1_o so_o also_o he_o work_v in_o we_o love_v to_o god_n by_o which_o we_o tender_v the_o pleasure_n of_o god_n above_o all_o thing_n in_o do_v and_o suffer_v of_o which_o we_o be_v never_o ashamed_a because_o the_o love_n of_o god_n be_v shed_v abroad_o in_o our_o heart_n by_o this_o holy_a spirit_n which_o he_o have_v give_v we_o rom._n 5.5_o and_o make_v we_o wait_v by_o hope_n for_o the_o righteousness_n to_o be_v reveal_v gal._n 5.5_o with_o longing_n and_o sigh_v rom._n 8.23_o and_o pray_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o supplication_n pour_v by_o he_o upon_o we_o zac._n 12.11_o and_o never_o leave_v till_o he_o have_v make_v we_o partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n resemble_v god_n in_o selfe-contentment_n though_o we_o be_v shut_v out_o of_o the_o world_n society_n and_o in_o be_v in_o love_n with_o good_a man_n that_o be_v beget_v of_o god_n 5.1_o 1_o john_n 5.1_o therefore_o he_o be_v call_v the_o spirit_n of_o love_n rom._n 15.30_o and_o in_o wisdom_n 13.11_o mar._n 13.11_o whereby_o the_o elect_v discern_v those_o mystery_n which_o none_o know_v but_o god_n and_o they_o for_o they_o be_v not_o discern_v by_o other_o 1_o cor._n 2.14_o and_o also_o in_o transform_v they_o into_o the_o practice_n of_o those_o thing_n they_o hear_v and_o believe_v by_o this_o spirit_n from_o one_o glorious_a grace_n to_o another_o 2_o cor._n 3.18_o and_o this_o through_o the_o sanctification_n of_o obedience_n 1_o pet._n 1.2_o by_o which_o he_o give_v we_o comfort_n by_o give_v we_o peace_n of_o conscience_n and_o joy_n in_o assurance_n of_o remission_n and_o freedom_n from_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n in_o which_o respect_n he_o be_v call_v the_o comforter_n john_n 16.7_o and_o so_o he_o be_v but_o especial_o in_o the_o time_n of_o affliction_n wherein_o he_o give_v they_o such_o taste_v of_o heavenly_a glory_n as_o make_v they_o to_o contemn_v all_o earthly_a thing_n and_o rejoice_v in_o tribulation_n rom._n 5.4_o because_o this_o spirit_n of_o glory_n rest_v upon_o they_o 1_o pet._n 4.14_o thus_o he_o go_v always_o with_o the_o elect_a work_v in_o they_o a_o spiritual_a strength_n to_o persevere_v though_o sometime_o they_o be_v like_o smoke_a flax_n almost_o choke_v in_o their_o sad_a melancholy_a fume_n or_o like_o bruise_a reed_n that_o have_v no_o strength_n then_o do_v he_o establish_v the_o inward_a man_n eph._n 3.16_o by_o nourish_v the_o seed_n of_o grace_n sow_o in_o our_o dry_a ground_n by_o his_o sweet_a dew_n from_o above_o esa_n 44.3_o and_o by_o his_o secret_a and_o powerful_a assistance_n in_o the_o time_n of_o trial_n 2_o cor._n 12.9_o bear_v witness_n to_o they_o that_o they_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o all_o their_o cross_n in_o this_o world_n rom._n 8.15_o which_o he_o seal_v to_o they_o by_o the_o promise_v believe_v concern_v christ_n and_o himself_o eph._n 1.13_o all_o which_o consider_v we_o shall_v make_v much_o of_o this_o spirit_n and_o not_o grieve_v it_o nor_o quench_v it_o not_o grieve_v it_o by_o act_v without_o it_o by_o our_o own_o sensual_a desire_n and_o separate_v ourselves_o from_o the_o society_n where_o he_o do_v afford_v his_o gracious_a dispensation_n jud._n 19_o or_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v his_o power_n in_o give_v they_o skill_n and_o ability_n to_o perform_v their_o several_a place_n and_o calling_n nor_o ask_v counsel_n of_o he_o or_o direction_n from_o he_o esa_n 30.1_o but_o rather_o despise_v it_o even_o in_o his_o ordinance_n 1_o thes_n 4.8_o and_o turn_v their_o ear_n from_o it_o as_o neh._n 9.20_o 30._o and_o harden_v their_o heart_n against_o it_o zac._n 7.12_o and_o rebel_n against_o his_o doctrine_n and_o so_o grieve_v he_o in_o his_o minister_n esa_n 63.10_o and_o act_v 7.51_o as_o st_n stephen_n tell_v the_o jew_n yea_o to_o tempt_v he_o by_o venture_v to_o try_v whether_o he_o will_v punish_v they_o or_o no_o as_o ananias_n and_o saphira_n do_v act_v 5.9_o by_o all_o which_o they_o show_v that_o whatsoever_o portion_n of_o the_o spirit_n they_o have_v receive_v yet_o it_o be_v in_o vain_a also_o we_o must_v not_o quench_v it_o as_o some_o do_v fire_n by_o cast_v on_o water_n or_o withdraw_v that_o which_o shall_v feed_v it_o 1.6_o ●_o tim._n 1.6_o or_o lose_v it_o as_o we_o do_v spring_n for_o want_v of_o endeavour_n to_o draw_v or_o pump_v they_o and_o this_o man_n do_v when_o after_o they_o have_v have_v some_o taste_n of_o heavenly_a gift_n in_o remorse_n for_o sin_n or_o some_o joifull_a apprehension_n of_o god_n promise_n yet_o they_o fall_v away_o and_o have_v begin_v in_o the_o spirit_n yet_o end_n in_o the_o flesh_n gal._n 3._o so_o when_o they_o fall_v into_o gross_a sin_n after_o call_v to_o grace_n they_o cause_v the_o holy_a one_o to_o cease_v from_o they_o in_o his_o operation_n for_o a_o time_n and_o so_o lose_v the_o joy_n which_o former_o they_o find_v in_o god_n service_n so_o do_v they_o discourage_v the_o spirit_n of_o their_o teacher_n so_o that_o they_o can_v do_v their_o work_n with_o joy_n but_o grief_n heb._n 13.17_o thus_o by_o live_v in_o know_a sin_n they_o sad_a the_o spirit_n which_o will_v seal_v they_o to_o the_o day_n of_o redemption_n eph._n 4.30_o which_o may_v possible_o conduce_v to_o the_o unpardonable_a sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n if_o these_o be_v not_o repent_v of_o mathe._n i_o pray_v declare_v to_o i_o that_o sin_n as_o plain_a as_o you_o can_v phila._n it_o be_v a_o wilful_a and_o total_a fall_v away_o from_o the_o ground_n and_o true_a beginning_n of_o christ_n and_o from_o that_o spiritual_a fellowship_n which_o one_o have_v have_v with_o the_o people_n of_o god_n therein_o after_o one_o illumination_n and_o outward_a sanctification_n contemn_v the_o gospel_n and_o despight_v the_o method_n and_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n without_o repentance_n even_o to_o death_n all_o this_o may_v be_v gather_v from_o heb._n 6.4_o 5_o 6._o and_o heb._n 10.25_o 26_o 27._o but_o this_o must_v be_v right_o understand_v as_o first_o that_o he_o must_v be_v one_o enlighten_v with_o some_o competent_a knowledge_n in_o true_a religion_n and_o sanctify_v by_o outward_a call_n at_o least_o to_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n heb._n 10.29_o and_o the_o seal_n thereof_o though_o not_o sanctify_v by_o save_a grace_n which_o show_v itself_o by_o true_a repentance_n from_o all_o sin_n and_o by_o rely_v on_o christ_n by_o faith_n for_o his_o salvation_n so_o next_o he_o must_v wilful_o apostate_n heb._n 10.26_o as_o it_o be_v without_o temptation_n not_o as_o david_n by_o lust_n or_o peter_n by_o fear_n yea_o it_o must_v be_v a_o total_a fall_n from_o all_o part_n of_o truth_n which_o may_v possible_o overpower_v his_o nature_n by_o the_o terror_n of_o the_o law_n also_o he_o must_v despise_v the_o gospel_n and_o even_o loath_a the_o way_n of_o salvation_n by_o christ_n and_o scorn_v the_o gospel_n which_o be_v the_o mean_n of_o sanctification_n and_o have_v in_o some_o manner_n work_v former_o upon_o himself_o some_o change_n of_o mind_n and_o manner_n beside_o he_o must_v offer_v some_o despite_n by_o blasphemy_n and_o persecution_n and_o that_o not_o of_o ignorance_n as_o paul_n do_v but_o of_o desperate_a malice_n and_o that_o not_o only_o to_o the_o person_n of_o the_o holy_a as_o many_o have_v do_v to_o the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n and_o son_n by_o many_o presumptuous_a sin_n but_o to_o the_o work_n of_o grace_n and_o operate_a power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o we_o by_o which_o god_n come_v more_o near_o to_o we_o then_o in_o other_o thing_n or_o to_o his_o power_n show_v outward_o for_o approve_v gospel-truth_n so_o the_o pharisee_n blaspheme_v the_o miracle_n of_o christ_n say_v that_o they_o be_v wrought_v by_o beelzebub_n mat._n 12.24_o whereas_o be_v do_v they_o
by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n ver_fw-la 28._o by_o which_o they_o be_v convince_v both_o what_o and_o from_o whence_o he_o be_v joh._n 7.28_o again_o this_o sin_n must_v be_v continue_v in_o without_o remorse_n which_o sometime_o make_v man_n despair_v of_o mercy_n when_o they_o reflect_v upon_o the_o greatness_n of_o their_o sin_n which_o man_n may_v do_v though_o they_o never_o commit_v this_o sin_n yet_o this_o sin_n be_v continue_v unto_o death_n as_o appear_v in_o julian_n the_o apostate_n without_o any_o repentance_n and_o therefore_o be_v call_v the_o sin_n unto_o death_n 1_o john_n 5.16_o and_o the_o sin_n unpardonable_a by_o our_o saviour_n mat._n 12.13_o not_o because_o it_o exceed_v god_n mercy_n or_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n but_o because_o it_o prevent_v and_o disappoint_v the_o application_n of_o they_o for_o want_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n they_o have_v apostate_v in_o their_o very_a heart_n which_o be_v the_o place_n where_o faith_n and_o charity_n shall_v be_v root_v although_o they_o do_v not_o always_o show_v it_o outward_o heb._n 3.12_o mathe._n how_o may_v one_o be_v sure_a to_o escape_v this_o sin_n phila._n first_o let_v he_o examine_v himself_o whether_o he_o have_v the_o holy_a ghost_n rom._n 8.9_o and_o we_o may_v know_v it_o by_o its_o lust_a against_o the_o flesh_n and_o make_v our_o heart_n to_o rise_v against_o sin_n gal._n 5.17_o next_o it_o beget_v in_o we_o a_o pleasant_a taste_n of_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o a_o spiritual_a nature_n for_o of_o ourselves_o we_o have_v spiritual_a foul_a palate_n like_o people_n in_o fever_n 8.5_o rom._n 8.5_o that_o make_v they_o distaste_v what_o be_v good_a next_o it_o stir_v we_o up_o to_o mortify_v sin_n and_o all_o evil_a concupiscence_n rom._n 8.13_o and_o then_o it_o give_v we_o victory_n over_o sin_n by_o make_v we_o free_a from_o the_o law_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n rom._n 8.2_o so_o that_o the_o body_n be_v dead_a because_o of_o sin_n but_o the_o spirit_n be_v life_n because_o of_o righteousness_n rom._n 8.10_o by_o which_o the_o heart_n be_v circumcise_v as_o well_o as_o the_o outward_a man_n or_o the_o outward_a manner_n rom._n 8.29_o beside_o this_o spirit_n do_v transform_v we_o into_o the_o image_n of_o holiness_n from_o one_o glorious_a grace_n to_o another_o as_o he_o hear_v they_o relate_v in_o god_n word_n wherein_o we_o behold_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n 2_o cor._n 3.18_o also_o it_o make_v we_o glorify_v god_n in_o the_o very_a fire_n of_o affliction_n because_o his_o love_n be_v shed_v abroad_o in_o our_o heart_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n rom._n 5.5_o and_o when_o a_o man_n find_v that_o he_o have_v the_o holy_a ghost_n then_o let_v he_o beware_v of_o those_o sin_n that_o be_v forerunner_n of_o this_o as_o first_o the_o forsake_v of_o that_o mean_n by_o which_o they_o be_v once_o enlighten_v as_o the_o jew_n do_v the_o ministry_n of_o john_n the_o baptist_n who_o be_v a_o burn_a and_o a_o shine_a light_n and_o for_o a_o while_o they_o rejoice_v in_o his_o light_n but_o after_o fall_v away_o so_o take_v heed_n of_o affect_v man_n praise_n more_o than_o god_n and_o of_o a_o common_a alienation_n of_o the_o mind_n from_o goodness_n and_o of_o evil_a action_n without_o temptation_n of_o envy_n at_o godly_a man_n and_o misinterpretation_n of_o their_o good_a word_n and_o work_n if_o they_o have_v any_o sense_n of_o these_o sin_n break_v off_o the_o course_n of_o they_o lest_o you_o proceed_v to_o the_o contempt_n of_o the_o operation_n of_o this_o good_a spirit_n but_o rather_o behave_v themselves_o as_o those_o that_o partake_v of_o the_o spirit_n gal._n 5.25_o by_o bring_v forth_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n gal._n 5.22_o as_o love_v joy_n peace_n long_o suffer_v gentleness_n goodness_n faith_n meekness_n temperance_n etc._n etc._n by_o which_o they_o be_v know_v to_o be_v his_o church_n mathe._n what_o mean_v you_o by_o the_o church_n phil._n this_o word_n church_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v nominal_o local_o and_o personal_o the_o word_n or_o name_n ecclesia_fw-la the_o church_n be_v use_v among_o the_o athenian_n for_o a_o assembly_n of_o citizen_n call_v together_o out_o of_o the_o common_a multitude_n by_o name_n by_o a_o public_a crier_n to_o hear_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o senate_n which_o word_n be_v use_v by_o the_o apostle_n to_o signify_v the_o church_n christian_n which_o also_o signify_v a_o company_n of_o people_n call_v together_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o god_n minister_n out_o of_o the_o rude_a world_n and_o kingdom_n of_o satan_n to_o hear_v the_o gospel_n reveal_v from_o heaven_n but_o the_o word_n church_n be_v derive_v of_o the_o greek_a word_n that_o signify_v lord_n from_o which_o word_n kyriake_n or_o kyrios_n lord_n come_v the_o scotch_a word_n kirk_n and_o our_o word_n church_n 2._o this_o word_n be_v take_v for_o a_o place_n of_o holy_a assembly_n to_o meet_v in_o about_o the_o service_n of_o god_n so_o 1_o cor._n 11.18_o when_o you_o come_v together_o in_o the_o church_n which_o though_o not_o it_o may_v be_v such_o as_o we_o be_v yet_o be_v a_o place_n set_v apart_o for_o such_o a_o use_n he_o call_v it_o the_o church_n and_o such_o place_n the_o christian_n have_v from_o the_o primitive_a time_n which_o be_v the_o place_n that_o contain_v those_o that_o be_v the_o live_a church_n of_o god_n namely_o faithful_a christian_n the_o place_n so_o contain_v in_o a_o figurative_a form_n of_o speech_n levit._n aug._n q._n 57_o in_o levit._n be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o people_n contain_v therein_o which_o ancient_a writer_n have_v not_o fear_v to_o call_v holy_a place_n in_o regard_n of_o their_o separation_n to_o holy_a use_n and_o therefore_o as_o christ_n do_v not_o allow_v common_a thing_n to_o be_v set_v or_o carry_v through_o the_o temple_n so_o the_o ancient_n do_v not_o like_o that_o holy_a service_n that_o concern_v general_a meeting_n shall_v be_v do_v in_o common_a place_n or_o house_n 310._o basil_n in_o rug._n comp_n explic_a q._n &_o respo_n 310._o except_o dedicate_v to_o holy_a use_n urge_v that_o in_o 1_o cor._n 11._o to_o forbid_v common_a eat_n in_o the_o church_n and_o the_o holy_a banquet_n in_o a_o private_a house_n that_o the_o word_n church_n have_v be_v use_v for_o place_n it_o appear_v by_o all_o that_o have_v ancient_o write_v on_o the_o 1_o cor._n 11._o or_o comment_v thereupon_o theodo_n sedul_a com._n ci●y●ost_n theodo_n and_o indeed_o there_o be_v such_o place_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o gospel_n reception_n even_o from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n time_n 〈◊〉_d call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d three_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n though_o they_o be_v no_o stately_a structure_n but_o at_o first_o some_o upper_a room_n in_o house_n which_o some_o devout_a christian_n dedicate_v to_o divine_a worship_n 3._o bede_n de_fw-fr locit_fw-la sanct_a ●●_o 3._o c._n 3._o the_o first_o of_o which_o be_v think_v to_o be_v that_o upper_a chamber_n where_o christ_n keep_v his_o last_o supper_n and_o where_o the_o holy_a spirit_n descend_v upon_o the_o apostle_n where_o they_o have_v assemble_v before_o and_o where_o christ_n have_v twice_o appear_v to_o they_o on_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n john_n 20._o in_o this_o place_n it_o seem_v the_o apostle_n meet_v often_o upon_o weighty_a occasion_n as_o in_o the_o choice_n of_o the_o seven_o deacon_n 27._o hieron_n ep._n 27._o and_o there_o be_v the_o first_o council_n hold_v about_o circumcise_n the_o gentile_n act_n 15.6_o and_o this_o place_n some_o call_v the_o chamber_n of_o zion_n and_o the_o upper_a church_n of_o the_o apostle_n hieroso_n cyril_n hieroso_n which_o place_n seem_v to_o be_v sufficient_o consecrate_v by_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o holy_a mystery_n of_o his_o sacrament_n 50.2_o psal_n 50.2_o so_o that_o from_o zion_n god_n appear_v in_o perfect_a beauty_n and_o the_o gospel_n go_v forth_o from_o zion_n as_o the_o law_n from_o sinai_n and_o we_o need_v not_o make_v doubt_n of_o this_o when_o we_o consider_v how_o man_n sell_v their_o possession_n and_o then_o lay_v they_o down_o at_o the_o apostle_n foot_n who_o no_o doubt_n with_o such_o money_n will_v purchase_v some_o place_n for_o christian-assemble_o and_o rather_o this_o then_o any_o other_o be_v first_o sanctify_v by_o christ_n institution_n of_o his_o last_o supper_n there_o and_o therefore_o some_o take_v this_o place_n for_o that_o house_n where_o the_o apostle_n sit_v together_o when_o the_o holy_a ghost_n fall_v upon_o they_o act_v 2.2_o and_o indeed_o we_o read_v not_o of_o any_o place_n more_o likely_a for_o their_o convention_n than_o there_o where_o their_o master_n and_o our_o lord_n
accept_v only_o of_o a_o bare_a acknowledgement_n of_o a_o fault_n or_o a_o promise_n of_o amends_o that_o can_v be_v plead_v for_o satisfaction_n to_o justify_v or_o if_o the_o fault_n be_v of_o so_o high_a a_o nature_n that_o no_o sufficient_a amends_o can_v be_v make_v there_o be_v no_o mean_n for_o the_o offender_n to_o be_v justify_v otherwise_o if_o the_o party_n offend_v have_v make_v full_a satisfaction_n then_o be_v he_o free_a from_o punishment_n and_o to_o be_v repute_v blameless_a now_o this_o satisfaction_n be_v make_v by_o do_v or_o suffer_v that_o which_o save_v the_o fault_n be_v not_o due_a and_o this_o may_v be_v do_v by_o the_o offender_n himself_o or_o by_o another_o for_o he_o the_o offender_n himself_o may_v plead_v satisfaction_n if_o he_o can_v prove_v that_o the_o plaintiff_n have_v commit_v as_o great_a a_o fault_n against_o himself_o but_o satisfaction_n make_v by_o another_o be_v when_o the_o do_v or_o suffer_v by_o another_o be_v accept_v for_o the_o do_v or_o suffer_v of_o the_o offender_n himself_o and_o this_o may_v satisfy_v for_o the_o offender_n better_a than_o he_o can_v satisfy_v for_o himself_o oftentimes_o so_o a_o man_n can_v satisfy_v god_n for_o his_o offence_n by_o any_o act_n of_o his_o own_o because_o his_o best_a righteousness_n be_v imperfect_a and_o sinful_a but_o be_v justify_v by_o another_o satisfaction_n he_o be_v make_v just_a by_o the_o justice_n of_o another_o that_o be_v by_o the_o imputation_n of_o the_o other_o merit_n though_o that_o merit_n be_v not_o repute_v as_o do_v by_o the_o offender_n but_o accept_v for_o he_o no_o more_o than_o the_o offender_n sin_n can_v be_v repute_v his_o that_o justify_v he_o though_o it_o may_v be_v impute_v to_o he_o now_o the_o effect_n of_o justification_n be_v pardon_n which_o be_v the_o remit_v of_o punishment_n deserve_v by_o a_o offence_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o any_o essential_a part_n of_o justification_n but_o only_o a_o consequent_a or_o contingent_a effect_n thereof_o now_o justification_n be_v before_o god_n or_o man_n that_o before_o man_n you_o may_v apprehend_v by_o what_o have_v be_v say_v that_o before_o god_n be_v thus_o to_o be_v consider_v god_n be_v infinite_o just_a sin_n be_v a_o transgression_n of_o his_o infinite_a will_n and_o wisdom_n which_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o justice_n the_o punishment_n due_a to_o this_o sin_n be_v everlasting_a torment_n in_o hell_n therefore_o to_o be_v justify_v before_o god_n be_v to_o be_v clear_v in_o his_o sight_n from_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n and_o to_o be_v absolve_v from_o that_o punishment_n which_o in_o divine_a justice_n be_v due_a to_o sin_n and_o this_o none_o can_v avoid_v unless_o he_o can_v plead_v the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o law_n or_o that_o which_o be_v proportionable_a thereto_o we_o can_v plead_v the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o law_n for_o the_o most_o righteous_a man_n do_v transgress_v it_o culpa_fw-la luke_n 1._o sine_fw-la querela_fw-la non_fw-la sine_fw-la culpa_fw-la zachary_n and_o his_o wife_n elizabeth_n walk_v in_o the_o law_n blameless_a i._o before_o man_n not_o god_n and_o there_o none_o can_v plead_v any_o formal_a or_o inherent_a righteousness_n of_o his_o own_o and_o if_o no_o man_n can_v be_v so_o justify_v by_o plead_v his_o own_o righteousness_n than_o he_o must_v be_v justify_v by_o some_o other_o proportionable_a satisfaction_n to_o god_n justice_n namely_o by_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n rom._n 3.23_o 24_o 26._o for_o it_o be_v a_o blemish_n to_o god_n justice_n to_o free_v a_o sinner_n from_o punishment_n without_o his_o justice_n be_v satisfy_v no_o man_n can_v do_v that_o if_o he_o offend_v but_o one_o tittle_n of_o the_o law_n nor_o free_v himself_o from_o everlasting_a punishment_n nor_o can_v he_o plead_v that_o he_o have_v suffer_v any_o injury_n at_o god_n hand_n whereby_o he_o can_v claim_v acquittance_n from_o the_o least_o sin_n nor_o can_v any_o other_o mere_a creature_n make_v satisfaction_n for_o he_o that_o creature_n be_v sinite_fw-la and_o god_n wrath_n infinite_a therefore_o he_o that_o justifi_v man_n must_v not_o only_o be_v perfect_o righteous_a himself_o but_o infinite_a also_o and_o almighty_a and_o so_o no_o less_o than_o god_n esa_n 63.1_o 2_o 3._o heb._n 1.2_o 6._o again_o god_n be_v but_o one_o can_v proper_o be_v satisfy_v mere_o by_o himself_o 3.20_o gal._n 3.20_o for_o that_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n to_o forgive_v without_o satisfaction_n and_o to_o pardon_v without_o justification_n therefore_o the_o person_n that_o make_v satisfaction_n must_v be_v not_o only_a god_n but_o some_o way_n differ_v from_o he_o and_o so_o inferior_a to_o he_o joh._n 4.28_o now_o it_o will_v have_v puzzle_v angel_n and_o man_n to_o find_v out_o such_o a_o one_o god_n only_o have_v reveal_v he_o in_o the_o gospel_n namely_o jesus_n christ_n the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n the_o second_o person_n in_o the_o most_o glorious_a trinity_n 1_o john_n 14.18_o rom._n 3.24_o by_o who_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o his_o satisfaction_n and_o be_v make_v righteous_a before_o god_n by_o that_o righteousness_n which_o be_v formal_o in_o christ_n alone_o rom._n 3.20_o phil._n 3.8_o 9_o 2_o cor._n 5.21_o this_o jesus_n christ_n that_o he_o may_v make_v full_a satisfaction_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o his_o elect_a do_v take_v upon_o himself_o the_o guilt_n of_o their_o sin_n esa_n 53.12_o 1_o cor._n 15.3_o and_o assume_v the_o nature_n of_o man_n into_o the_o person_n of_o his_o deity_n that_o so_o he_o be_v true_a god_n and_o true_a man_n a_o fit_a mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n and_o so_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o divine_a nature_n make_v full_a satisfaction_n in_o his_o humane_a nature_n phil._n 2.7_o heb._n 2.14_o and_o that_o by_o do_v what_o we_o have_v and_o by_o suffer_v what_o we_o ought_v and_o our_o fail_n be_v perfect_v by_o his_o active_a obedience_n and_o punishment_n remit_v by_o his_o passive_a and_o by_o both_o the_o whole_a man_n be_v justify_v both_o be_v impute_v to_o we_o and_o accept_v of_o god_n for_o we_o the_o one_o for_o that_o inherent_a righteousness_n which_o shall_v have_v be_v in_o we_o and_o the_o other_o for_o that_o satisfaction_n that_o we_o shall_v have_v make_v in_o our_o own_o person_n for_o now_o god_n esteem_v we_o as_o free_v from_o original_n and_o actual_a sin_n 5.8_o rom._n 5.8_o and_o from_o all_o sin_n of_o omission_n and_o commission_n 1_o john_n 1.9_o and_o therefore_o be_v esteem_v as_o perfect_o righteous_a and_o therefore_o free_a from_o all_o punishment_n for_o you_o be_v not_o to_o understand_v that_o by_o christ_n suffering_n we_o be_v free_v from_o sin_n 4.25_o rom._n 4.25_o by_o his_o active_a obedience_n make_v righteous_a but_o by_o both_o joint_o for_o they_o can_v be_v separate_v no_o more_o than_o we_o can_v find_v a_o medium_n between_o a_o righteous_a man_n and_o he_o that_o be_v no_o sinner_n now_o of_o this_o justification_n they_o alone_o do_v partake_v who_o by_o faith_n lie_v hold_v of_o it_o and_o apply_v it_o to_o their selve_o by_o which_o they_o may_v know_v they_o be_v justify_v another_o mark_n of_o a_o true_a christian_a invisible_a be_v sanctification_n not_o of_o office_n as_o consecration_n but_o a_o holy_a quality_n of_o mind_n and_o disposition_n and_o renovation_n of_o spirit_n by_o which_o we_o put_v off_o the_o old_a conversation_n and_o put_v on_o the_o new_a man_n which_o after_o god_n be_v create_v in_o righteousness_n and_o true_a holiness_n and_o by_o this_o mean_v we_o come_v to_o walk_v worthy_a of_o our_o call_n to_o holiness_n 1.9_o 2_o tim._n 1.9_o which_o must_v be_v now_o as_o our_o profession_n be_v in_o the_o commonwealth_n wherein_o every_o one_o desire_v to_o excel_v by_o make_v his_o calling_n his_o business_n and_o to_o show_v himself_o a_o work_n man_n that_o need_v not_o be_v ashamed_a this_o the_o apostle_n call_v glorification_n rom._n 8.30_o because_o indeed_o grace_n be_v but_o glory_n initiate_v and_o glory_n be_v but_o grace_v consummate_v this_o be_v do_v when_o god_n be_v please_v to_o magnify_v the_o power_n of_o his_o word_n in_o our_o heart_n to_o sanctify_v so_o thorough_o that_o our_o spirit_n soul_n and_o body_n may_v be_v blameless_a of_o this_o many_o boast_n of_o it_o and_o the_o papist_n nouzle_v they_o in_o it_o by_o say_v that_o sanctification_n be_v incident_a to_o reprobate_n and_o that_o castaway_n may_v partake_v of_o the_o renew_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o sure_o they_o may_v say_v as_o well_o that_o they_o be_v unite_v to_o christ_n how_o else_o can_v they_o partake_v of_o his_o spirit_n or_o can_v they_o be_v sanctify_v that_o have_v not_o his_o spirit_n or_o have_v they_o his_o spirit_n that_o be_v not_o his_o member_n indeed_o there_o be_v some_o thing_n that_o bear_v a_o resemblance_n with_o it_o in_o which_o the_o world_n be_v
receive_v and_o that_o be_v 1._o civility_n or_o common_a honesty_n and_o the_o next_o be_v restrain_v grace_n by_o which_o they_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v sanctify_v sacramental_o or_o putative_o 10.26_o heb._n 10.26_o or_o dispose_v towards_o it_o heb._n 6.4_o 5._o but_o this_o be_v but_o to_o have_v it_o fieri_fw-la but_o none_o in_o facto_fw-la esse_fw-la i._o in_o a_o way_n towards_o it_o but_o not_o in_o thorough_o or_o true_o and_o therefore_o man_n must_v distinguish_v between_o civility_n which_o be_v wrought_v mere_o by_o moral_a education_n according_a to_o natural_a principle_n without_o any_o knowledge_n or_o desire_n of_o know_v god_n word_n but_o they_o be_v careful_a to_o maintain_v equity_n and_o common_a honesty_n for_o the_o keep_n up_o of_o trade_n and_o commendation_n of_o themselves_o upon_o which_o ground_n also_o they_o keep_v themselves_o from_o drunkenness_n whoredom_n and_o enormous_a crime_n without_o relation_n to_o god_n word_n now_o sanctification_n though_o it_o incline_v to_o the_o same_o thing_n or_o duty_n yet_o it_o do_v it_o by_o the_o true_a medium_n of_o heavenly_a light_n which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o they_o that_o do_v not_o so_o be_v as_o far_o from_o sanctification_n as_o the_o heathen_a morallist_n now_o their_o civility_n and_o all_o mere_a natural_a man_n honesty_n stand_v principal_o in_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o second_o table_n where_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n be_v most_o clear_a but_o for_o matter_n of_o piety_n in_o the_o first_o table_n they_o observe_v it_o but_o ceremonious_o and_o so_o far_o as_o they_o conduce_v to_o preserve_v their_o credit_n among_o those_o they_o live_v withal_o but_o true_a sanctification_n have_v a_o eye_n to_o both_o to_o give_v to_o caesar_n and_o to_o god_n their_o several_a duty_n 22.21_o mat._n 22.21_o so_o the_o moral_a holy_a man_n rest_v only_o in_o negative_n and_o think_v it_o charity_n enough_o not_o to_o do_v hurt_v but_o true_a holiness_n do_v both_o eschew_v evil_a and_o do_v good_a 1_o pet._n 3.11_o so_o the_o moral_a man_n think_v it_o holiness_n enough_o to_o profess_v a_o dislike_n of_o popery_n and_o to_o quarrel_v with_o a_o bishop_n dignity_n though_o they_o be_v utter_o ignorant_a of_o the_o orthodox_n faith_n and_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n again_o civility_n never_o go_v beyond_o the_o outward_a man_n mat._n mat._n because_o it_o take_v hold_v only_o of_o the_o outward_a letter_n of_o the_o law_n but_o pass_v over_o the_o spiritual_a sense_n of_o it_o so_o he_o that_o have_v restrain_v grace_n which_o he_o take_v for_o sanctification_n be_v much_o deceive_v for_o the_o difference_n between_o they_o be_v that_o restrain_v grace_n have_v painfulness_n and_o discontentment_n at_o the_o bridle_n that_o god_n put_v upon_o they_o and_o at_o the_o band_n wherewith_o they_o be_v bind_v at_o which_o they_o rage_n psal_n 2.1_o 3._o as_o horse_n that_o some_o upon_o the_o bit_n by_o which_o they_o be_v guide_v whereas_o a_o man_n that_o be_v true_o sanctify_v desire_v that_o his_o very_a inclination_n to_o evil_a be_v utter_o abolish_v that_o it_o may_v not_o rebel_v against_o the_o law_n of_o the_o mind_n 7.23_o rom._n 7.23_o again_o they_o desire_v to_o extend_v their_o christian_a liberty_n to_o the_o utmost_a without_o inquire_v after_o the_o bound_n of_o liberty_n or_o the_o expedience_n of_o put_v it_o in_o practice_n but_o a_o man_n sanctify_a desire_v to_o subsist_v within_o his_o bound_n 1_o cor._n 6.12_o and_o have_v rather_o live_v where_o nothing_o be_v lawful_a then_o where_o all_o thing_n be_v lawful_a beside_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n in_o their_o abstain_v from_o sin_n for_o restrain_v grace_n make_v one_o abstain_v from_o sin_n for_o fear_n or_o shame_n because_o they_o will_v give_v the_o great_a liberty_n to_o some_o sin_n which_o they_o desire_v to_o nourish_v 12._o aug._n the_o civet_n dei_fw-la l._n 5._o c._n 12._o as_o some_o heathen_n abstain_v from_o injustice_n intemperance_n and_o covetousness_n by_o that_o unbounded_a desire_n which_o they_o have_v after_o glory_n and_o dominion_n but_o he_o that_o be_v sanctify_v eschew_v evil_a because_o it_o be_v evil_a and_o displease_v to_o god_n of_o who_o love_n he_o have_v have_v so_o large_a experience_n that_o he_o tremble_v to_o offend_v he_o psal_n 130.4_o again_o they_o that_o have_v only_o restrain_v grace_n when_o the_o mean_n of_o that_o straint_n be_v remove_v grow_v licentious_a as_o israel_n when_o they_o have_v no_o king_n judg._n 17.6_o and_o the_o 18.19_o but_o they_o that_o be_v sanctify_v be_v a_o law_n to_o themselves_o 1_o tim._n 1.9_o they_o need_v none_o of_o the_o terror_n of_o it_o though_o they_o be_v willing_a to_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o it_o by_o these_o rule_v thou_o may_v know_v whether_o thou_o be_v sanctify_v or_o not_o and_o from_o these_o mark_n arise_v a_o assure_a hope_n of_o eternal_a glory_n because_o we_o carry_v about_o we_o the_o ground_n of_o thing_n hope_v for_o and_o the_o evidence_n of_o thing_n not_o see_v of_o which_o at_o the_o first_o it_o may_v be_v we_o have_v but_o a_o conjecture_n i._o a_o light_a inclination_n to_o the_o probability_n of_o gospel_n truth_n next_o a_o opinion_n wherein_o the_o mind_n be_v more_o strong_o sway_v to_o think_v it_o true_a next_o come_v faith_n which_o make_v a_o firm_a and_o undoubtful_a persuasion_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o it_o now_o in_o this_o case_n some_o have_v a_o little_a faith_n some_o a_o full_a assurance_n of_o it_o which_o be_v peculiar_a to_o god_n people_n and_o they_o may_v know_v they_o have_v it_o by_o the_o comfort_n that_o it_o afford_v to_o one_o under_o the_o pressure_n of_o sin_n and_o god_n justice_n psal_n 73.23_o 24._o and_o also_o by_o the_o ravish_a of_o the_o affection_n to_o the_o love_n of_o those_o truth_n which_o be_v very_o strange_a and_o supernatural_a for_o there_o be_v no_o great_a antipathy_n in_o the_o world_n than_o there_o be_v between_o man_n heart_n and_o god_n word_n and_o yet_o by_o faith_n be_v breed_v such_o affection_n to_o it_o that_o a_o man_n will_v give_v his_o life_n rather_o than_o one_o tittle_n of_o this_o truth_n shall_v fail_v and_o beside_o it_o work_v a_o strange_a change_n in_o the_o whole_a man_n from_o sin_n to_o righteousness_n that_o one_o can_v hardly_o know_v he_o to_o be_v the_o same_o man_n vitia_fw-la lact._n de_fw-fr falsa_fw-la sapient_a l._n 3._o c._n 27_o non_fw-la abscindit_fw-la sed_fw-la abscondit_fw-la vitia_fw-la this_o philosophy_n can_v never_o attain_v to_o but_o rather_o hide_v sin_n then_o remove_v it_o but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v so_o powerful_a in_o operation_n that_o it_o not_o only_o remove_v sin_n but_o also_o all_o doubtfulness_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o gospel-truth_n more_o than_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n can_v do_v which_o be_v variable_a and_o possible_o erroneous_a so_o much_o of_o the_o rule_n of_o sanctification_n and_o hope_v of_o glory_n mathe._n whereunto_o do_v sanctification_n advance_v we_o more_o than_o common_a christian_n phila._n to_o a_o true_a repentance_n and_o a_o communion_n with_o god_n and_o his_o saint_n in_o the_o catholic_n church_n mathe._n i_o desire_v to_o know_v what_o these_o thing_n be_v true_o in_o themselves_o for_o i_o fear_v some_o do_v as_o much_o mistake_v true_a repentance_n as_o the_o sectary_n do_v the_o communion_n of_o saint_n and_o the_o papist_n do_v the_o catholic_n church_n phila._n you_o say_v true_a but_o repentance_n which_o be_v holy_a and_o sanctify_a be_v not_o a_o fret_a grief_n which_o some_o take_v at_o sin_n because_o it_o have_v bring_v they_o into_o a_o dangerous_a condition_n for_o which_o they_o wish_v the_o sin_n undo_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d no_o place_n be_v leave_v for_o other_o advice_n and_o counsel_n this_o hurt_v the_o mind_n and_o cast_v it_o from_o the_o hinge_n of_o deliberation_n except_o god_n turn_v it_o to_o a_o change_n of_o mind_n whereby_o one_o become_v more_o wise_a afterward_o to_o amend_v what_o he_o have_v do_v amiss_o and_o to_o make_v amends_o for_o his_o error_n 2_o cor._n 7.9_o 10._o the_o cause_n of_o the_o one_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n whereby_o we_o be_v seal_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o cause_n of_o the_o other_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o servitude_n the_o one_o arise_v from_o the_o gospel-promise_n the_o other_o from_o the_o threaten_n of_o the_o law_n for_o fear_n of_o condemnation_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d both_o be_v well_o distinguish_v by_o st_n luke_n the_o godly_a repentance_n act_v 2.37_o they_o be_v prick_v in_o their_o heart_n for_o their_o unkindness_n to_o christ_n but_o act_v 7.54_o be_v describe_v the_o very_a spirit_n of_o remorse_n not_o the_o remorse_n of_o spirit_n by_o say_v they_o be_v cut_v to_o the_o heart_n by_o
he_o die_v not_o for_o they_o not_o for_o the_o good_a for_o they_o need_v no_o sanctification_n by_o redemption_n though_o a_o preservation_n in_o their_o stand_n by_o the_o virtue_n of_o he_o in_o who_o they_o be_v first_o call_v to_o immutability_n of_o estate_n who_o be_v the_o first_o bear_v of_o every_o creature_n because_o he_o be_v eternal_o bear_v of_o god_n before_o any_o creature_n be_v make_v col._n 1.15_o and_o by_o he_o they_o be_v make_v and_o therefore_o must_v hold_v their_o estate_n but_o yet_o they_o can_v be_v of_o the_o redeem_a church_n in_o regard_n they_o be_v never_o captive_v nor_o do_v ever_o fall_v from_o nor_o fall_v out_o with_o god_n and_o so_o need_v he_o that_o be_v only_o a_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n of_o who_o this_o church_n consist_v which_o be_v one_o holy_a catholic_a church_n build_v on_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n christ_n be_v the_o head_n corner_n stone_n this_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o all_o the_o benefit_n which_o god_n have_v afford_v we_o in_o christ_n through_o his_o spirit_n and_o be_v call_v one_o because_o it_o be_v the_o one_o only_a mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n and_o have_v but_o one_o faith_n to_o knit_v it_o to_o christ_n and_o one_o spirit_n to_o agitate_v it_o one_o god_n by_o who_o it_o be_v call_v to_o worship_v he_o and_o to_o be_v glorify_v of_o he_o one_o love_n by_o which_o all_o the_o member_n be_v gather_v among_o themselves_o and_o one_o salvation_n the_o felicity_n thereof_o and_o one_o bond_n of_o divine_a love_n in_o christ_n towards_o she_o in_o which_o respect_n she_o be_v call_v his_o friend_n his_o belove_a and_o his_o spouse_n so_o it_o be_v call_v catholic_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o universal_a largeness_n of_o it_o be_v tie_v to_o neither_o person_n time_n nor_o place_n therefore_o it_o be_v either_o ignorant_o or_o arrogant_o assume_v by_o the_o papist_n who_o call_v their_o roman_a church_n catholic_a whereas_o it_o want_v the_o catholic_a extension_n of_o it_o as_o well_o as_o the_o catholic_a truth_n of_o it_o so_o it_o be_v call_v holy_a because_o it_o have_v a_o most_o holy_a and_o sanctify_a head_n by_o which_o sin_n be_v not_o impute_v and_o her_o corruption_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o degree_n take_v away_o that_o she_o may_v be_v present_v to_o god_n without_o spot_n or_o wrinkle_n eph._n 1.27_o so_o it_o be_v call_v prophetical_a and_o apostolical_a because_o she_o be_v found_v upon_o their_o doctrine_n eph._n 2.20_o now_o the_o part_n of_o this_o church_n be_v triumphant_a or_o militant_a the_o triumphant_a be_v that_o part_n which_o now_o triumph_v with_o christ_n the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n over_o all_o enemy_n and_o enjoi_v with_o he_o all_o gladness_n and_o felicity_n of_o soul_n and_o after_o the_o resurrection_n shall_v enjoy_v the_o fullness_n of_o it_o in_o soul_n and_o body_n unite_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o just_a after_o death_n do_v enjoy_v heavenly_a felicity_n be_v plain_a because_o it_o be_v say_v rev._n 7.15_o that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o dead_a be_v before_o god_n throne_n in_o white_a robe_n serve_v god_n day_n and_o night_n and_o because_o christ_n promise_v the_o thief_n that_o time_n he_o die_v that_o his_o soul_n shall_v be_v with_o he_o in_o paradise_n luke_n 23.43_o which_o paradise_n st_n paul_n call_v the_o three_o heaven_n 2_o cor._n 12.2_o 4._o and_o it_o be_v say_v heb._n 12.23_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o just_a man_n be_v in_o the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n and_o therefore_o when_o this_o tabernacle_n be_v dissolve_v i._o our_o body_n we_o have_v a_o house_n in_o heaven_n 2_o cor._n 5.1_o or_o else_o st_o paul_n have_v little_a reason_n to_o desire_v dissolution_n if_o not_o to_o be_v with_o christ_n phil._n 1.23_o but_o yet_o all_o this_o prove_v nothing_o for_o the_o pope_n canonisation_n of_o saint_n who_o memorial_n be_v esteem_v of_o all_o good_a man_n and_o their_o example_n imitate_v but_o we_o find_v no_o scripture_n for_o their_o canonisation_n nor_o for_o those_o honour_n the_o pope_n give_v they_o as_o 1._o to_o be_v write_v in_o a_o catalogue_n thereby_o command_v they_o to_o be_v call_v saint_n 2._o by_o call_v on_o they_o in_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n 3._o by_o dedicate_a to_o their_o memory_n temple_n and_o altar_n 4._o by_o offer_v any_o sacrifice_n in_o their_o honour_n and_o 5._o celebrate_v day_n festival_n to_o their_o memory_n 6._o by_o set_v up_o their_o picture_n 7._o by_o reserve_v their_o relic_n to_o worship_n and_o all_o this_o must_v be_v do_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o none_o else_o 8._o bel._n the_o heatitud_n sanct_a lib._n 1._o cap._n 7._o and_o 8._o say_v his_o flatterer_n and_o he_o can_v err_v therein_o yet_o st_n paul_n say_v that_o only_a god_n know_v who_o be_v his_o not_o the_o pope_n for_o he_o canonize_v hypocrite_n who_o he_o by_o his_o indulgence_n have_v flatter_v to_o hell_n in_o their_o life_n time_n and_o then_o place_v they_o in_o heaven_n when_o they_o be_v dead_a though_o their_o soul_n be_v in_o the_o place_n of_o torment_n this_o kind_n of_o canonisation_n come_v up_o by_o pope_n leo_n the_o three_o supra_fw-la bel._n ut_fw-la supra_fw-la about_o eight_o hundred_o year_n since_o and_o then_o antichrist_n be_v detect_v and_o so_o canonisation_n be_v antichristian_a so_o be_v their_o give_v to_o they_o religious_a worship_n which_o in_o scripture_n be_v neither_o command_v nor_o give_v by_o any_o good_a man_n far_o than_o by_o esteem_v they_o of_o bless_a memory_n luke_n 1.44_o or_o by_o praise_v god_n for_o they_o gal._n 1.5_o or_o by_o imitation_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o virtue_n yea_o angel_n have_v refuse_v it_o at_o the_o hand_n of_o man_n and_o apostle_n also_o as_o act_n 10.26_o and_o 14.15_o and_o rev._n 19.10_o and_o 22.8_o and_o as_o bad_a be_v their_o doctrine_n of_o saint_n intercede_v for_o we_o for_o there_o be_v but_o one_o mediator_n who_o make_v intercession_n in_o who_o name_n only_o we_o expect_v salvation_n act_v 4.10_o and_o receive_v remission_n act_v 17.31_o he_o be_v a_o perfect_a mediator_n and_o need_v nor_o require_v any_o copartner_n 1_o cor._n 1.13_o and_o heb._n 12.2_o beside_o 118._o aug._n lib._n 10._o conf_n cap._n 42._o amb._n de_fw-fr isaac_n cap._n 8._o aug._n in_o psal_n 118._o who_o can_v insure_v we_o that_o the_o dead_a depart_v have_v any_o cognizance_n of_o our_o state_n or_o prayer_n isa_n 63.16_o sure_o christ_n be_v our_o mouth_n to_o speak_v to_o god_n and_o our_o eye_n to_o see_v he_o and_o our_o hand_n to_o offer_v to_o he_o and_o that_o prayer_n that_o be_v not_o offer_v by_o he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o blot_v out_o sin_n that_o it_o become_v sin_v itself_o therefore_o the_o worship_v of_o angel_n forbid_v by_o st_n paul_n col._n 2.18_o be_v unlawful_a and_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n as_o bad_a agenda_fw-la aug._n lib._n de_fw-fr cura_fw-la pro_fw-la mortuis_fw-la agenda_fw-la since_o the_o dead_a know_v not_o what_o the_o live_a do_v and_o that_o true_a christian_n believe_v not_o on_o peter_n himself_o but_o in_o he_o upon_o who_o peter_n believe_v as_o aug._n say_v well_o in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n lib._n 18._o cap._n 58._o but_o worse_a be_v the_o religious_a worship_n of_o their_o image_n though_o there_o may_v be_v a_o civil_a use_n of_o they_o for_o adorn_v of_o house_n or_o keep_v of_o they_o in_o memory_n 113._o aug._n the_o civet_n dei_fw-la cap._n 14_o &_o in_o psal_n 36._o &_o in_o psal_n 113._o or_o paint_v of_o they_o historical_o but_o to_o set_v up_o their_o image_n or_o picture_n in_o temple_n and_o holy_a place_n under_o pretence_n of_o instruct_v the_o ignorant_a as_o do_v pope_n gregory_n the_o first_o they_o have_v degenerate_v to_o superstition_n and_o idolatry_n as_o serenus_n bishop_n of_o massilus_n forewarn_v that_o pope_n nor_o will_v suffer_v any_o to_o be_v in_o his_o church_n however_o those_o log_n of_o which_o the_o image_n be_v make_v have_v better_a fortune_n than_o their_o fellow_n who_o be_v as_o good_a as_o they_o yet_o be_v lay_v behind_o the_o fire_n there_o be_v none_o in_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o eusebius_n bishop_n of_o caesarea_n about_o the_o year_n 330._o but_o the_o first_o paint_n of_o church_n wass_n be_v do_v by_o pontius_n paulinus_n bishop_n of_o nola_n who_o paint_v the_o church_n with_o the_o story_n of_o the_o israelite_n sunfet_a in_o the_o wilderness_n to_o deter_v the_o people_n from_o gluttony_n that_o come_v to_o the_o annual_a feast_n of_o st_n faelix_fw-la but_o sure_o he_o have_v no_o religion_n that_o worship_v a_o image_n though_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n 300._o lactant._n de_fw-fr errore_fw-la orig._n lib._n 2._o cap._n 16._o anno_fw-la 300._o for_o we_o be_v not_o to_o make_v image_n of_o thing_n
in_o heaven_n to_o worship_v they_o therefore_o the_o most_o ancient_a religious_a man_n have_v set_v themselves_o against_o picture_n and_o image_n in_o church_n as_o do_v epiphanius_n bishop_n of_o salamine_n in_o cyprus_n anno_fw-la 390._o as_o appear_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o john_n of_o jerusalem_n jerusal_n epist_n ad_fw-la joan._n jerusal_n concern_v who_o see_v trip._n hist_o lib._n 9_o cap._n 4._o but_o worst_a of_o all_o be_v their_o adoration_n of_o the_o relic_n of_o saint_n which_o have_v not_o any_o show_n of_o warrant_n in_o scripture_n nor_o antiquity_n but_o be_v a_o mere_a will-worship_n col._n 2.23_o we_o find_v it_o give_v neither_o to_o patriarch_n nor_o prophet_n nor_o apostle_n who_o body_n no_o doubt_n be_v more_o honourable_a than_o other_o till_o the_o church_n begin_v to_o be_v corrupt_v by_o idolatry_n and_o superstition_n which_o they_o borrow_v from_o heathen_n and_o heretic_n as_o carpocrates_n who_o with_o his_o marcellina_n carry_v about_o they_o little_a image_n of_o silver_n and_o gold_n of_o pythagoras_n plato_n aristotle_n and_o also_o of_o christ_n all_o which_o they_o worship_v haeres_fw-la epipha_n count_v haeres_fw-la or_o else_o from_o some_o filthy_a dreamer_n judas_n ver_fw-la 8._o such_o a_o one_o as_o eguainus_a of_o the_o order_n of_o benet_n a_o english_a monk_n swear_v in_o the_o council_n hold_v in_o london_n anno_fw-la 712._o that_o the_o virgin_n mary_n appear_v to_o he_o in_o a_o dream_n and_o tell_v he_o it_o be_v her_o will_n that_o her_o image_n shall_v be_v set_v up_o in_o the_o church_n to_o be_v worship_v it_o be_v therefore_o conclude_v it_o shall_v be_v so_o by_o pope_n constantine_n the_o first_o and_o boniface_n his_o legate_n than_o here_o in_o england_n and_o so_o image_n be_v set_v up_o in_o england_n it_o be_v write_v theodosii_fw-la amb._n lib._n de_fw-fr morte_fw-la theodosii_fw-la that_o helen_n the_o empress_n find_v christ_n cross_n but_o yet_o she_o worship_v only_o he_o that_o die_v upon_o it_o but_o these_o image_n and_o worship_v of_o relic_n may_v the_o more_o easy_o be_v obtrude_v upon_o the_o people_n after_o that_o library_n be_v destroy_v by_o the_o invasion_n of_o the_o goth_n and_o vandal_n by_o which_o mean_v ignorance_n and_o negligence_n creep_v into_o the_o church_n much_o less_o be_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n then_o to_o be_v worship_v as_o a_o thing_n that_o either_o sanctifi_v or_o put_v the_o devil_n to_o flight_n as_o the_o papist_n say_v for_o that_o belong_v to_o the_o efficacy_n and_o merit_n of_o christ_n death_n nor_o have_v we_o any_o command_n or_o example_n in_o scripture_n for_o so_o do_v it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n have_v be_v ancient_o use_v by_o christian_n as_o a_o mark_n of_o distinction_n that_o they_o be_v neither_o jew_n nor_o heathen_n but_o for_o worship_v of_o it_o or_o attribute_v virtue_n or_o merit_n to_o it_o i_o read_v nothing_o though_o i_o find_v it_o use_v by_o the_o confession_n of_o father_n 1400_o year_n ago_o even_o at_o baptism_n finem_fw-la cyprian_a ad_fw-la demet._n prop._n finem_fw-la nor_o think_v unfitting_a by_o our_o modern_a and_o protestant_n divine_v as_o bucer_n zanchius_n zuinglius_fw-la and_o other_o nor_o do_v i_o think_v that_o day_n ought_v to_o be_v dedicate_v to_o saint_n now_o in_o the_o church_n triumphant_a nor_o to_o be_v celebrate_v in_o regard_n of_o any_o mystery_n inhere_v to_o they_o nor_o be_v they_o more_o holy_a than_o other_o day_n nor_o the_o keep_n of_o they_o a_o part_n of_o divine_a worship_n far_o than_o a_o holy_a duty_n do_v upon_o that_o day_n extend_v itself_o though_o i_o know_v it_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o church_n by_o a_o common_a consent_n without_o superstition_n or_o idolatry_n to_o appoint_v certain_a day_n for_o divine_a duty_n as_o to_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o to_o pray_v for_o the_o turn_n away_o of_o god_n judgement_n jan._n aug_n epist_n 128._o ad_fw-la jan._n and_o to_o give_v thanks_o for_o benefit_n receive_v spiritual_a and_o temporal_a as_o mordecai_n appoint_v the_o feast_n of_o purim_n and_o judas_n machabeus_n the_o feast_n of_o the_o dedication_n but_o these_o and_o all_o other_o festival_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v set_v up_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o so_o those_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n one_o moral_a in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o jewish_a sabbath_n call_v the_o lord_n day_n the_o other_o be_v ecclesiastical_a appoint_v by_o the_o church_n in_o remembrance_n of_o what_o christ_n have_v do_v for_o we_o but_o to_o appoint_v holy_a day_n for_o other_o use_n then_o to_o god_n and_o his_o worship_n or_o to_o place_n merit_n of_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n in_o keep_v they_o martyrum_fw-la in_o vigilis_fw-la ap._n &_o in_o fest_n come_v martyrum_fw-la as_o the_o papist_n do_v as_o appear_v in_o their_o prayer_n at_o those_o time_n be_v superstitious_a so_o it_o be_v also_o to_o dedicate_v such_o day_n to_o saint_n depart_v i_o know_v that_o some_o day_n of_o old_a time_n have_v be_v keep_v in_o the_o memory_n of_o some_o holy_a martyr_n for_o the_o confirm_v of_o christian_n in_o those_o place_n where_o they_o have_v suffer_v but_o be_v now_o out_o of_o use_n 14._o hieron_n apud_fw-la eusebium_fw-la lib._n 4._o cap._n 14._o yet_o they_o then_o do_v only_o remember_v their_o suffering_n and_o give_v thanks_o to_o god_n for_o their_o constancy_n in_o the_o faith_n mathe._n what_o do_v you_o count_v the_o church_n militant_a to_o be_v phila._n that_o company_n of_o faithful_a people_n here_o upon_o earth_n who_o be_v govern_v by_o one_o certain_a head_n and_o under_o his_o banner_n do_v fight_v against_o the_o world_n flesh_n and_o devil_n and_o all_o affliction_n in_o spiritual_a armour_n eph._n 6.11_o 12_o 13_o 14_o 15_o 16_o 17._o in_o regard_n of_o which_o battle_n it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o church_n militant_a be_v not_o always_o in_o one_o happy_a state_n to_o outward_a appearance_n but_o as_o israel_n and_o amaleck_n one_o prevail_v and_o sometime_o the_o other_o like_o the_o moon_n wax_a and_o wane_v or_o noah_n ark_n sometime_o toss_v on_o the_o flood_n and_o sometime_o rest_v on_o the_o mountain_n or_o like_o christ_n ship_n now_o in_o a_o calm_a anon_o in_o a_o storm_n or_o a_o lily_n among_o thorn_n or_o a_o child_a woman_n sometime_o groan_v and_o anon_o rejoice_v the_o reason_n hereof_o be_v that_o god_n may_v be_v know_v and_o fear_v by_o his_o church_n as_o a_o correct_a father_n pro._n 3.13_o who_o will_v chastise_v his_o child_n for_o their_o offence_n 1_o cor._n 11.32_o that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v disinherit_v nor_o condemn_v with_o the_o world_n the_o main_a end_n whereof_o be_v that_o god_n may_v be_v glorify_v in_o deliver_v of_o his_o church_n as_o he_o be_v in_o deliver_v israel_n out_o of_o egypt_n and_o from_o pharaoh_n pursuit_n of_o they_o exod._n 15.1_o and_o from_o the_o captivity_n of_o babylon_n psal_n 126.2_o and_o that_o they_o may_v learn_v to_o hate_v sin_n which_o cause_v god_n to_o bring_v affliction_n isa_n 63.10_o and_o to_o serve_v god_n more_o sincere_o jer._n 31.18_o 19_o by_o hearty_a zeal_n and_o repentance_n rev._n 3.19_o also_o that_o the_o church_n may_v give_v a_o evidence_n to_o their_o profession_n of_o the_o truth_n mat._n 10.22_o and_o be_v confirm_v to_o christ_n their_o head_n rom._n 8.29_o who_o before_o pontius_n pilate_n witness_v a_o good_a confession_n 1_o tim._n 6.13_o and_o so_o be_v distinguish_v from_o hypocrite_n who_o in_o time_n of_o trouble_n fall_v away_o not_o understand_v that_o by_o the_o cross_a the_o church_n be_v propagate_v and_o by_o dissipation_n increase_v and_o that_o the_o blood_n of_o martyrdom_n be_v the_o seed_n of_o the_o church_n to_o who_o the_o promise_n of_o a_o better_a life_n be_v make_v but_o it_o must_v be_v expect_v to_o be_v perform_v by_o hope_n mathe._n who_o be_v the_o head_n of_o this_o church_n militant_a phila._n he_o that_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_a general_o god_n in_o trinity_n but_o more_o particular_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o church_n mystical_a head_n and_o she_o be_v his_o body_n and_o kingdom_n eph._n 1.22_o and_o the_o 4._o cap._n ver_fw-la 15_o 16._o and_o he_o govern_v as_o her_o head_n principal_o by_o the_o sceptre_n of_o his_o word_n and_o spirit_n phil._n 2.13_o now_o thus_o christ_n have_v a_o kingdom_n natural_a or_o dispensatorie_a his_o natural_a headship_n or_o kingdom_n be_v that_o whereby_o he_o reign_v in_o unity_n of_o essence_n with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n from_o all_o eternity_n which_o shall_v never_o have_v a_o end_n the_o kingdom_n that_o he_o have_v by_o dispensation_n be_v that_o free_a and_o voluntary_a kingdom_n which_o he_o receive_v from_o god_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o
have_v not_o the_o spirit_n that_o lu_v against_o the_o flesh_n gal._n 5.17_o whereas_o in_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n militant_a christ_n live_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n derive_v to_o they_o sense_n life_n and_o spiritual_a motion_n nor_o do_v we_o number_v hypocrite_n to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n militant_a though_o in_o the_o visible_a church_n by_o partake_v of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o sacrament_n because_o they_o want_v those_o virtue_n and_o grace_n which_o prove_v one_o to_o be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n as_o faith_n to_o apprehend_v christ_n the_o head_n and_o foundation_n and_o to_o be_v unite_v to_o he_o and_o therefore_o can_v bear_v no_o fruit_n in_o he_o but_o must_v be_v take_v away_o john_n 15.2_o though_o they_o be_v in_o church_n visible_a which_o church_n the_o papist_n only_o acknowledge_v may_v well_o hold_v that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v always_o visible_a mathe._n why_o be_v it_o not_o so_o phila._n you_o be_v to_o consider_v that_o the_o term_n or_o word_n church_n be_v diverse_o understand_v first_o for_o the_o universal_a company_n of_o believer_n and_o so_o it_o be_v invisible_a and_o therefore_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o creed_n i_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n now_o faith_n be_v the_o evidence_n of_o thing_n not_o see_v second_o church_n be_v take_v for_o a_o company_n of_o man_n in_o particular_a place_n profess_v one_o and_o the_o same_o true_a religion_n and_o so_o it_o be_v visible_a again_o if_o you_o take_v the_o church_n in_o the_o external_a form_n of_o it_o namely_o for_o a_o company_n of_o man_n meet_v together_o to_o perform_v church_n duty_n so_o the_o church_n be_v visible_a but_o if_o you_o take_v it_o in_o its_o internal_a form_n consist_v in_o efficacious_a call_n and_o faith_n so_o it_o be_v invisible_a for_o it_o be_v hard_o to_o judge_v who_o have_v these_o grace_n therefore_o certain_o neither_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n nor_o all_o that_o part_n of_o it_o call_v militant_a be_v visible_a but_o some_o part_n of_o the_o church_n militant_a have_v and_o be_v but_o yet_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o be_v always_o visible_a but_o may_v possible_o lie_v hide_v and_o unappear_v at_o some_o time_n 14_o aug._n in_o lib._n 5._o cont_n donat._n c._n 17_o rev._n 13.13_o 14_o in_o which_o regard_n the_o church_n be_v call_v a_o garden_n enclose_v and_o a_o fountain_n seal_v cant._n 4.11_o and_o the_o weapon_n of_o her_o warfare_n to_o be_v spiritual_a 2_o cor._n 10.4_o when_o antichrist_n reign_v over_o the_o world_n where_o be_v then_o the_o church_n visible_a sure_o flee_v like_o the_o woman_n rev._n 12.16_o into_o some_o solitary_a place_n as_o eliah_n be_v force_v to_o do_v by_o jesabel_n 1_o kin._n 19.10_o indeed_o there_o have_v be_v and_o i_o fear_v will_v be_v again_o when_o our_o sun_n will_v be_v darken_v and_o her_o moon_n will_v not_o give_v her_o light_n and_o our_o star_n fall_v from_o the_o church_n heaven_n and_o when_o you_o see_v the_o abomination_n of_o heresy_n schism_n and_o libertinism_n set_v up_o in_o god_n temple_n let_v he_o that_o be_v in_o christianity_n fly_v to_o the_o scripture_n for_o there_o you_o shall_v only_o find_v what_o the_o true_a church_n be_v namely_o certain_a people_n call_v at_o divers_a hour_n some_o at_o the_o first_o some_o at_o the_o second_o other_o at_o the_o three_o so_o at_o the_o beginning_n middle_a and_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o not_o all_o alike_o at_o all_o time_n sometime_o cloud_v sometime_o more_o resplendent_a so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o always_o visible_a nor_o always_o alike_o visible_a mathe._n whether_o be_v the_o visible_a church_n subject_n to_o defect_n or_o error_n phila._n yes_o for_o adam_n and_o eve_n fall_v in_o paradise_n and_o afterward_o the_o world_n be_v so_o wicked_a that_o the_o church_n remain_v only_o in_o noah_n family_n and_o after_o god_n have_v choose_v the_o people_n of_o israel_n to_o be_v his_o church_n they_o worship_v the_o golden_a calf_n and_o for_o that_o and_o other_o sin_n we_o find_v they_o leave_v without_o religion_n priest_n or_o law_n 2_o chron._n 5._o and_o their_o temple_n ruin_v and_o themselves_o disperse_v christ_n say_v that_o faith_n shall_v hardly_o be_v find_v on_o the_o earth_n 2._o 2_o thes_n 2._o and_o st_n paul_n prophesi_v of_o a_o general_a apostasy_n so_o in_o the_o time_n of_o athanasius_n the_o christian_a world_n be_v overrun_v with_o arianism_n only_a athanasius_n stand_v for_o christ_n that_o he_o be_v of_o the_o same_o substance_n with_o the_o father_n but_o he_o be_v but_o one_o man_n and_o one_o man_n can_v not_o make_v a_o church_n so_o that_o the_o church_n as_o well_o as_o the_o moon_n may_v suffer_v a_o eclipse_n especial_o when_o the_o sword_n shall_v awake_v against_o the_o shepherd_n zach._n 13.7_o and_o he_o shall_v be_v smite_v and_o the_o sheep_n scatter_v so_o likewise_o the_o visible_a church_n may_v err_v not_o the_o church_n catholic_n and_o universal_a for_o truth_n can_v not_o be_v find_v then_o upon_o earth_n nor_o any_o visible_a militant_a church_n for_o than_o they_o have_v no_o truth_n to_o fight_v for_o but_o the_o visible_a church_n as_o it_o consist_v of_o its_o outward_a matter_n and_o form_n namely_o of_o a_o company_n of_o man_n exercise_v about_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n may_v err_v and_o so_o it_o do_v before_o the_o law_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o patriarch_n and_o under_o the_o law_n as_o the_o church_n of_o israel_n and_o since_o the_o law_n for_o the_o visible_a church_n of_o the_o jew_n persecute_v the_o christian_n and_o the_o disciple_n be_v all_o offend_v and_o stumble_v at_o christ_n suffering_n and_o hardly_o believe_v at_o first_o his_o resurrection_n yea_o and_o after_o it_o err_v about_o his_o kingdom_n act_v 1.6_o which_o they_o think_v shall_v be_v earthly_a so_o they_o doubt_v a_o while_n about_o the_o call_n of_o the_o gentile_n act_n 10.20_o cap._n 11.2_o so_o we_o find_v the_o church_n of_o the_o corinth_n full_a of_o division_n 1.11_o 1_o cor._n 1.11_o and_o schism_n and_o doubt_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a 1_o cor._n 15._o and_o the_o church_n of_o galatia_n fall_v back_o to_o judaisme_n by_o circumcision_n 3._o gal._n 5.1_o 2_o 3._o yea_o all_o the_o eastern_a church_n as_o well_o as_o the_o seven_o church_n of_o the_o lesser_a asia_n have_v have_v their_o error_n and_o remain_v in_o some_o as_o the_o papist_n say_v even_o till_o now_o yea_o general_a council_n have_v not_o be_v free_a for_o one_o have_v disallow_v what_o the_o other_o have_v allow_v and_o both_o can_v therefore_o be_v true_a as_o the_o council_n of_o frankford_n break_v down_o the_o image_n in_o church_n 3._o aug._n lib._n de_fw-fr unita_fw-la eccles_n c._n 3._o which_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a restore_v and_o so_o many_o other_o do_v one_o contradict_v another_o which_o show_v the_o church_n imperfection_n and_o that_o it_o stand_v not_o with_o her_o nature_n to_o be_v free_a from_o error_n for_o than_o if_o she_o do_v once_o err_v she_o can_v be_v no_o long_o a_o church_n therefore_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n if_o it_o be_v a_o visible_a church_n can_v challenge_v no_o such_o prerogative_n especial_o since_o antichrist_n sit_v there_o as_o chief_a governor_n rustic_a hier._n in_o epist_n rustic_a since_o which_o time_n by_o avarice_n the_o law_n be_v perish_v from_o the_o priest_n and_o vision_n from_o the_o prophet_n mathe._n i_o pray_v tell_v i_o the_o note_n of_o a_o true_a visible_a church_n phila._n i_o suppose_v you_o mean_v particular_a church_n in_o several_a nation_n for_o the_o universal_a catholic_a church_n be_v rather_o to_o be_v believe_v then_o see_v as_o be_v imply_v in_o that_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n i_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n there_o be_v therefore_o three_o note_n of_o a_o true_a visible_a church_n first_o a_o sincere_a preach_n of_o the_o word_n second_o a_o pure_a dispensation_n of_o sacrament_n and_o three_o a_o right_a administration_n of_o discipline_n these_o be_v the_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n though_o all_o of_o they_o be_v not_o sound_v always_o and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n in_o a_o church_n as_o the_o jew_n for_o forty_o year_n in_o the_o wilderness_n want_v circumcision_n so_o sometime_o some_o minister_n may_v possible_o through_o ignorance_n infirmity_n or_o fear_n or_o to_o please_v greatness_n depart_v from_o sincere_a doctrine_n and_o so_o by_o the_o dragon_n tail_n many_o star_n be_v cast_v to_o the_o earth_n and_o by_o some_o of_o they_o the_o water_n be_v make_v bitter_a rev._n 8.11_o yet_o may_v it_o be_v a_o true_a church_n so_o long_o as_o the_o discession_n from_o pure_a doctrine_n be_v not_o general_a so_o a_o church_n may_v by_o minister_n neglect_v want_v sacrament_n and_o by_o the_o tyranny_n
of_o base_a mettle_n be_v make_v valuable_a by_o the_o power_n of_o king_n and_o a_o small_a piece_n of_o parchment_n by_o law_n enable_v to_o convey_v a_o inheritance_n the_o element_n be_v mean_a and_o poor_a the_o better_a to_o resemble_v he_o that_o have_v neither_o form_n nor_o beauty_n in_o his_o passion_n and_o also_o to_o set_v forth_o his_o power_n who_o can_v do_v wonder_n and_o miracle_n by_o weak_a mean_n yet_o they_o be_v double_v to_o confirm_v our_o comfort_n and_o they_o be_v the_o element_n of_o our_o sustentation_n to_o present_v to_o we_o his_o virtue_n by_o which_o the_o soul_n be_v nourish_v to_o everlasting_a life_n next_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v what_o relation_n the_o action_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o consecration_n have_v to_o himself_o and_o of_o the_o receiver_n to_o christ_n namely_o in_o that_o he_o eat_v and_o drink_v the_o sacrament_n the_o action_n of_o christ_n in_o his_o consecration_n of_o the_o element_n to_o a_o sacramental_a use_n be_v first_o his_o taking_z and_o blessing_n of_o the_o element_n luke_n 22.19_o 20._o there_o be_v another_o cup_n name_v in_o the_o 17_o verse_n which_o be_v only_o the_o cup_n of_o thanksgiving_n use_v by_o the_o jew_n in_o all_o their_o solemn_a feast_n but_o this_o be_v the_o cup_n of_o blessing_n 1_o cor._n 10.16_o the_o cup_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n in_o his_o blood_n which_o blessing_n cause_v it_o to_o cease_v from_o be_v a_o common_a drink_n and_o to_o become_v sacramental_a signify_v that_o he_o take_v our_o nature_n and_o sanctify_v it_o to_o undertake_v the_o work_n of_o redemption_n and_o yet_o alter_v not_o the_o element_n in_o their_o nature_n but_o use_v not_o in_o their_o substance_n but_o efficacy_n no_o more_o than_o he_o alter_v the_o nature_n of_o man_n by_o take_v it_o into_o the_o deity_n though_o he_o advance_v it_o in_o quality_n above_o the_o common_a capacity_n of_o humane_a nature_n so_o he_o break_v it_o johannis_n aug._n tom_n 8._o in_o psal_n &_o tom_n 9_o tract_n 7._o in_o ep._n johannis_n to_o show_v what_o violence_n shall_v be_v use_v to_o his_o body_n and_o pour_v out_o the_o wine_n to_o set_v forth_o the_o effusion_n of_o his_o blood_n so_o he_o give_v it_o to_o his_o disciple_n to_o show_v that_o he_o free_o bestow_v himself_o upon_o the_o church_n with_o all_o his_o merit_n second_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v in_o the_o action_n of_o the_o receiver_n what_o relation_n they_o have_v to_o christ_n their_o action_n be_v take_v eat_a drink_v take_v show_v the_o believer_n hand_n of_o faith_n apprehend_v christ_n then_o he_o eat_v and_o drink_v the_o sacrament_n to_o signify_v the_o benefit_n we_o get_v by_o christ_n who_o precious_a death_n be_v exhibit_v to_o we_o in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o prove_v to_o we_o either_o like_a physic_n to_o prevent_v evil_a or_o to_o purge_v we_o of_o it_o 1_o john_n 1.7_o or_o else_o be_v like_o ordinary_a food_n to_o sustain_v we_o or_o like_o dainty_a meat_n to_o refresh_v and_o restore_v we_o again_o it_o be_v eat_v and_o drink_v to_o show_v that_o he_o be_v like_a meat_n without_o which_o we_o can_v live_v and_o after_o which_o we_o shall_v most_o earnest_o long_a and_o eager_o desire_v as_o hungry_a man_n do_v after_o victual_n as_o also_o to_o show_v what_o conformity_n our_o spiritual_a stomach_n have_v with_o christ_n for_o as_o that_o which_o we_o eat_v be_v retain_v if_o it_o agree_v with_o our_o stomach_n else_o it_o be_v repel_v so_o if_o our_o stomach_n spiritual_a do_v agree_v with_o christ_n we_o retain_v he_o because_o he_o agree_v with_o it_o and_o please_v it_o and_o content_v it_o which_o the_o world_n do_v not_o beside_o it_o be_v eat_v and_o drink_v to_o show_v that_o christ_n must_v incorporate_v with_o we_o not_o that_o we_o turn_v he_o into_o our_o nature_n as_o we_o do_v other_o meat_n but_o by_o our_o receive_v he_o he_o turn_v our_o nature_n to_o his_o likeness_n as_o leaven_n do_v turn_v the_o bread_n into_o its_o own_o likeness_n the_o bread_n do_v not_o turn_v it_o and_o in_o this_o respect_n the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v like_o a_o leven_a mat._n 13._o by_o this_o be_v also_o set_v forth_o that_o rare_a union_n that_o we_o have_v with_o christ_n he_o concorporate_n himself_o with_o we_o by_o faith_n in_o a_o wonderful_a manner_n joh._n aug._n ep._n 23._o aug._n in_o tract_n 26._o in_o joh._n for_o though_o we_o eat_v he_o not_o with_o our_o mouth_n yet_o we_o do_v by_o our_o mind_n therefore_o christ_n say_v take_v eat_z this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o indeed_o be_v not_o his_o body_n till_o it_o be_v eat_v nor_o then_o his_o natural_a but_o his_o sacramental_a body_n which_o man_n feed_v on_o by_o faith_n and_o not_o by_o sense_n by_o which_o faith_n christ_n be_v there_o present_a to_o every_o believer_n and_o that_o not_o only_o by_o his_o infinite_a and_o unlimited_a presence_n by_o which_o he_o fill_v all_o place_n nor_o by_o that_o real_a presence_n which_o the_o lutheran_n imagine_v as_o if_o christ_n body_n do_v partake_v of_o the_o incommunicable_a property_n of_o the_o deity_n such_o as_o ubiquity_n by_o which_o they_o believe_v christ_n to_o be_v in_o or_o under_o the_o element_n nor_o be_v christ_n present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n by_o the_o change_n of_o the_o element_n into_o his_o body_n as_o the_o papist_n hold_v a_o strange_a opinion_n to_o make_v christ_n subject_n to_o oral_a eat_n and_o gutterall_a swallow_v and_o to_o make_v god_n do_v thing_n not_o only_o contrary_a to_o nature_n which_o all_o man_n grant_v he_o can_v but_o thing_n contrary_a in_o nature_n which_o he_o can_v do_v because_o that_o impli_v a_o contradiction_n as_o we_o read_v that_o god_n make_v the_o sun_n and_o moon_n stand_v still_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o nature_n but_o he_o never_o do_v nor_o never_o will_v make_v the_o sun_n to_o stand_v and_o go_v at_o one_o and_o the_o same_o instant_n so_o neither_o make_v christ_n body_n infinite_a like_o the_o deity_n to_o be_v every_o where_n at_o one_o time_n nor_o certain_o will_v he_o so_o far_o debase_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o to_o make_v it_o a_o general_a food_n for_o all_o in_o the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v intend_v only_o for_o the_o spiritual_a nourishment_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o far_o christ_n be_v present_v energetical_o i._o by_o virtue_n and_o power_n so_o he_o be_v among_o those_o that_o be_v gather_v together_o in_o his_o name_n by_o the_o work_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n but_o in_o the_o sacrament_n he_o be_v relative_o present_a as_o be_v represent_v thereby_o as_o king_n be_v in_o their_o officer_n of_o state_n who_o act_n be_v count_v as_o the_o king_n own_o though_o he_o be_v personal_o present_a in_o his_o court_n only_o 5._o amb._n de_fw-fr incar_n cap._n 5._o so_o when_o his_o body_n be_v in_o the_o grave_n his_o virtue_n wrought_v from_o heaven_n to_o quicken_v it_o so_o now_o his_o body_n though_o in_o heaven_n yet_o his_o power_n work_v in_o every_o faithful_a receiver_n as_o the_o sun_n enlighten_v the_o eye_n though_o the_o body_n of_o the_o sun_n be_v in_o heaven_n again_o our_o eat_n and_o drink_v the_o sacrament_n must_v intimate_v to_o we_o that_o as_o food_n make_v a_o unite_n continue_v between_o soul_n and_o body_n so_o do_v the_o sacrament_n between_o christ_n and_o we_o by_o faith_n and_o as_o food_n do_v more_o strong_o unite_v one_o member_n to_o another_o so_o do_v the_o sacrament_n one_o member_n mystical_a of_o christ_n to_o another_o by_o love_n because_o we_o be_v many_o be_v one_o bread_n and_o one_o body_n be_v all_o partaker_n of_o that_o one_o bread_n and_o as_o by_o one_o spirit_n we_o be_v all_o baptize_v into_o one_o body_n so_o we_o all_o have_v be_v make_v to_o drink_v into_o one_o spirit_n 1_o cor._n 12.13_o that_o so_o we_o have_v all_o one_o food_n of_o life_n so_o we_o be_v of_o one_o mind_n and_o souse_n and_o one_o affection_n which_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o life_n moreover_o by_o partake_v of_o this_o sacrament_n by_o eat_v and_o drink_v be_v seal_v to_o we_o our_o right_n to_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n as_o sure_a as_o that_o which_o we_o eat_v be_v our_o own_o and_o concorporate_v with_o we_o therefore_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o communicant_a to_o consider_v how_o he_o understand_v the_o end_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o effect_n of_o it_o that_o so_o he_o may_v not_o receive_v only_o but_o perceive_v the_o lord_n body_n and_o so_o do_v it_o in_o remembrance_n of_o he_o in_o which_o duty_n it_o be_v require_v that_o we_o remember_v his_o death_n and_o the_o benefit_n thereof_o which_o not_o be_v do_v the_o sacrament_n be_v slight_v and_o profane_v because_o that_o to_o which_o it_o relate_v have_v no_o impression_n in_o we_o